The Most Valuable Gift


Oral-Sex
********

Prologue :

Edward Bruno Walter wasn't gifted with corking intelligence service. He wasn't strikingly handsome nor was he fabulously loaded. He was, more often than not, tongue tied around women so couldn't claim to have a silver grey tongue. He didn't have a six figure job, drive a fast sports car, or own a Villa in the southward of France.

But he was happy. Deeply, completely happy.

He had the dearest of the cleaning lady he'd been in love with since he was just a boy of six geezerhood. He'd lost his female parent to a tragic accident and had no father so he'd been taken in by his mother's cousin Shirley E. O. Wilson. While she'd been a less than ideal substitute, her ten yr old daughter thanksgiving saved him from a life-time of wretchedness and loneliness. His beloved for goodwill just grew over the years as he did.

And grow he did. Now that he was almost in his twenties he was a big man, standing 6'2"and 240 lbs of laborious muscle. His genes and years of playing football in school had given him a unattackable body. He wasn't aggressive by any stretchability of the imagination. Grace called him an inexperienced person. He relied tremendously on her because he often found himself baffled and troubled by people's behavior. He didn't agnize when he was being lied to nor did he understand why people did it. This often led to him being hurt or taken reward of. He knew that wasn't convention but grace of God never made him feel pudding head or ashamed for his unfitness to empathize. She was patient and explained affair to him. She understood him better than anyone and he loved her with every fibre of his being.

The truly incredible fact was that she loved him the same way.

They'd lived with her mother until free grace caught her sexually and emotionally abusing Ed. After the confrontation, Shirley spitefully sold her house to move in with her young man making them essentially homeless. While they were both grownup at the time they would have been on the streets had it not been for another cleaning woman in Ed's life.

Rachel Homer Armstrong Thompson was the female parent of one of Ed's football game teammates. Initially she seemed to be just attracted to his physical attribute but she confessed that she had fallen for his innocence and his sweet, gentle nature.

She'd later said that she never expected their kinship to gain beyond their mutual and sinewy physical attraction and she'd resigned herself to that. She lived alone in a prominent mansion since her ex-husband and his son had unsuccessfully tried to kill her to collect the indemnity money. She was lonely living alone in the big home and it was beginning to weigh heavily on her. When she heard that Ed and Grace were going to be out on the street she leapt at the fortune to get to their deliverance and comfort her loneliness. blessing and Ed were stunned by her generosity and willingness to get hold of them in.

When Ed discovered he was in love with Rachel as well as good will, it was Grace who announced it to Rachel. Knowing him as intimately as she did, seemliness was mindful of his true look for Rachel almost before he was. She wasn't threatened. She knew he loved her without reservation. She was also aware that Rachel wasn't the only woman that he'd been familiar with. They, like Rachel, had begun their relationships with him for the unadulterated forcible thrill of having sex with the big man but they'd all become attached to him… as he was to them.

Ed had been with Rachel's Charles Herbert Best friend Angie Spencer, a widowman, and their mutual Quaker Zoe Sandoval who was separated from her husband as he was serving a life sentence in prison. He'd also been with two other cleaning woman in Rachel's region, also her friends, Stephanie Mathews and Carolyn Patterson, both of whom were going through divorce proceedings. All continued to see Ed with saving grace's blessings as long as they never abused Ed's good nature or took vantage of his innocence. If she ever discovered they had manipulated him as Shirley had done then their relationship with him was over.

divagation from being very busy at home, Ed had his aspiration job working for Drakos heating system and cooling system. The owner had paid for Ed to get his certification and nurtured his pet employee as Ed's work was second to none. While his unique mental commonwealth may get given him some socially ambitious take they also allowed him to focus on his project with an almost laser like precision. It was almost a initiate state. He wasn't really clear on what all that meant but he knew he loved his job and for the first clip in his life he was really good at something.

So he was happy. With the leaves gone and snow threatening to precipitate any day now, his very favorite time of twelvemonth was rapidly approaching ! Christmas ! Now that he had so many Thomas More citizenry to share it with Ed knew he had more reasons to be very rattling indeed !



Chapter 1

Ed pulled his old, quiver up pickup into the service department of the beautiful mansion house up on Silverton peak. His motortruck was as out of place in this upscale neighbourhood as he often felt but it was perfectly suitable for him and he'd refused Rachel's generous offering to replace it with a newer example.

Getting out of the cab he stretched his wear out muscle. He'd worked out this morning with the gym equipment in the basement. If he'd known how strenuous oeuvre was going to be he might have chosen to vamoose the workout. The four story shopping composite in the downtown boutique shopping district the team was working on these Clarence Shepard Day Jr. involved a lot of heavy lifting and cramped working conditions but he was putting in extra sentence to get the job done quickly. If they could meet the deadline for the spring opening there was a generous bonus involved.

Mr. Drakos was very charmed with the forward motion they were making, especially Ed's. They were reaching a phase where the former contractor would be taking over the building to complete their body of work and they would have a pair of calendar month of rest before they'd need to return to complete up. If the early team didn't encounter any complications then they would definitely hit the deadline. As it was they'd be other, largely due to Ed's peculiar gestalt perception of systems and blueprint.

He had poured over the building's blue prints to ensure he understood where their installment would run and comment some errors in the construction of the building's layout. Two of import rampart had been poured in the wrong location and there wouldn't be adequate room in the central utilities shaft to house all of the required conduits. He'd brought this to the attention of the new web site gaffer who confirmed Ed was right and contacted the project managers, the Klein Group, with the reversal. Ed provided an alternate suggestion for the location of the electrical conduits which actually cut some of the cost so the chief was able-bodied to take steps to hold on the undertaking moving.

But today Ed was tired. It was late. Getting dwelling house at 9PM every night this calendar week was draining but he was done for the weekend. No Sabbatum reposition tomorrow.

He entered the theater and heard voice coming from the kitchen and the wonderful aroma of cooking. He followed this until he was standing in the doorway looking at the two women he shared the dwelling with.

Rachel noticed him first as she was facing his direction. Her smile dazzled him as it always did. lovely bluing eyes twinkled with delight as he stood enraptured by her beauty. souse red hair cascaded over her berm and partially obscured her abundant segmentation. His eyes were trapped there for a bit as she subtly arched her back to tease him just a little.

Grace turned with a grin and he looked into her loving dark heart. She was not as tall or svelte as Rachel but she absolutely glowed with love life for him and quickly crossed the way to pull him into a fuddled hug. Ed kissed her and felt himself floating away to heaven as her soft lip against his were absolute cloud nine.

"Welcome home,"she purred when she pulled back. He loved the feel of her body against his but he was just too pooped to respond that way.

"It's honorable to be habitation !"he sighed happily.

Grace released him and he made his way over to Rachel. He pulled her into a hug and kissed her. She slipped him a little tongue which sent a spark to his groin but he pulled back and shook his fingerbreadth at her."I'm not risking falling asleep while making love. Tonight I sleep. Tomorrow…"he bounced his eyebrows at the two noblewoman who chuckled at him.

Rachel patted his thick bicep, feeling a tantalizing small thrill shoot through herself and turned to get his dinner.

"I made a chicken casserole from that recipe you gave me."Rachel said as she pulled the knockout from the oven. Ed's mouth began to H2O immediately. She served up three plateful, giving Ed a large fortune. They carried their home to the mesa."Careful everyone, it's hot !"

grace brought marvellous ice of cold-blooded water supply to the table and they sat together.

"You two don't have to wait for me to get dwelling to bear dinner !"Ed exclaimed.

"gimcrackery ! We love eating together !"Rachel insisted and Grace just smiled at him. She knew he was secretly delighted they were sharing this mealtime with him.

Ed blew on a forkful of the steaming noodle and chicken then popped it into his backtalk. His centre closed in happiness as the feel melted across his tongue."Oh, that's so good, Rachel !"

She gave him a very proud of smile and enjoyed her own repast.

"How was school today ?"Ed asked free grace. She was attending college studying accounting as she wanted to be a forensic accountant.

thanksgiving's sudden smile warmed his affectionateness. He was so happy she was finally on the path she was destined for and he was so happy he was able-bodied to make it happen for her.

"It was really goodness ! The prof is taking us through an actual suit history of a company involved with money laundering !"she gushed.

Rachel smiled at the other woman's obvious delight.

Ed turned to her and she dabbed her sass as she swallowed."Well, I had luncheon with a lot of very wealthy gentlewoman with too much metre on their hands,"she quipped.

Ed looked at her curiously and she realized he hadn't caught her self-effacing feel. Grace raised an eyebrow at her and she nodded apologetically.

"With our neighbor from the top of the hill no longer uncommitted to attend these social events, the Empanada League invited me to their luncheon. to the highest degree wouldn't even look at me as I hadn't inherited my fortune but one of the ladies was friendly so the lunch wasn't a complete loss. They were discussing some big Polymonium caeruleum van-bruntiae gala event tomorrow night. I think it's a five 1000 dollar a plate dinner with a silent auction sale and celebrities attending."

"Five thousand buck a plate ! That's crazy ! But I'd pay $ 2000 for another collection plate of this casserole."Ed exclaimed.

Rachel snorted and got up to get him some more. On the way back to the table the phone rang. She put the home base in front man of him and ran her fingerbreadth through his hair as she walked past to get the phone. Ed and seemliness got to get word one side of the conversation.

"hi ? Oh, hi Tristan. Tickets ? No, I didn't buy any. Tomorrow Nox ? Yes, I know. What ? ! No, that's- that's too generous… I- I suppose I could. A date ?"

Rachel looked desperately at Ed who just blinked back at her. She looked to Grace who grinned, pointed at Ed and nodded.

"Yes, I have a date. What ? Yes… he is fairly special. Are you for certain ? OK, I'll see you there. sevener PM at the Esplanade. Thank you !"

Rachel looked back at their curious faces. Her backtalk was working but she couldn't speak.

Grace grinned at her excitement. Ed just continued to eat as he watched her.

"That was the dainty cleaning woman I met at the tiffin, Tristan President Grant. She's invited me and my date to the Polemonium caeruleum dinner tomorrow night.

"Who are you taking ?"Ed asked.

Rachel smiled at him and Grace snorted.

"Me ? At a fancy charity dinner ? Should I wear my fancy jeans ?"he grinned.

"I guess we're going shopping tomorrow !"Rachel cheered.

Ed grinned and hung his question to the sound of Grace's giggles.



Chapter 2

The Esplanade Convention shopping centre was buzzing with activity. The paparazzo were out in violence trying to capture effigy of the rich and famous, participant of the one-year Polemonium van-bruntiae dinner. The men were mostly dressed in classic black tie but the gentlewoman wore a stunning array of styles and colors. Greco-Roman to avant garde was on parade and the looker-on were eating it up. They were also appreciative of the beauty being flaunted. Along with the beautiful dresses and glittering jewellery many of those attending were very pretty indeed, both the men and women. Most of the unused plentiful spent their time with trainers and in salons maintaining their physiques. Others went the former way because, fuck you, if nifty food and wine is meant to be enjoyed why not enjoy it to excess !

As their limo pulled up to the red carpeting in the underground entrance of the Esplanade Rachel was trembling with excitement. She'd always wanted to walk the red carpet. Ed was looking a little stunned but he was doing his best to hide it.

Just like he was doing his substantially to veil his very large and visible erection against the damn mean pants Rachel and Grace had insisted he get with the black tie. He hadn't been able to observe his centre off Rachel as she looked incredible in the deep shimmering purple dress which left her shoulders exposed and had an expanse of lace over her chest that did minuscule to hide her impressive assets. Ed swore the lace accentuated her cycle, firm- He moaned quietly as he throbbed once more.

Rachel's luxurious red fuzz was artfully teased up onto her nous exposing the mild hide of her prospicient cervix. Ed struggled to keep from kissing her neck and to keep his fingers out of her red curl.

The car came to a stop and Ed stepped out. He walked around to Rachel's threshold and tried to ignore the flashes popping in his vision. He opened the room access and offered her his hand. Her soft digit settled in his and she stepped from the car and smiled demurely at him.

They began their walk.

Ed was taken aback at the thunderous yelling and the almost violent lightshow coming from the paparazzo. He felt a blue-blooded tug from Rachel's handwriting on his arm and they stopped briefly to confront the photographic camera. If anything the noise got louder.

Then they continued on their way. Once they were out of range the randomness dropped considerably.

Rachel leaned close to Ed and he felt her trembling."Oh my god Ed ! That was almost Worth paying the price for dinner tonight,"she said quietly just for him. Between them she brushed her finger's breadth lightly across his bulge and her chill intensified."Ohhh, if there was a way to take care of this right now I would !"

He discreetly adjusted himself and they approached the door. A few couples were waiting their twist before them. At the door was a thin man with slight hair who was holding a printed list of epithet. He was nice and pro as he greeted the couples. As the man identified each guest he would smile, hired hand the ladies a ticket and gesture for them to recruit. Ed wondered what the ticket was for. There was so very much new and strange going on here he was trying his best to fit in so Rachel would proceed to enjoy the experience.

Then it was their turn and the man was giving them the once over. Ed remained soundless and stood slightly to the side as Rachel approached. The man lifted his nose to look at Rachel.

"Rachel Thompson and Edward Walter, guests of Tristram and Dale Duncan Grant,"she said with a smile.

Ed noticed the man's nostril flaring and his optic narrowing slightly as he turned to look at the list. Ed's centre snapped to the papers and the name Dale jumped out immediately. Just below that was Rachel's and his name.

"Hmmm, I don't see your names-"the man began with an odd whole tone in his articulation as he pursed his sass like he'd tasted something foul. Ed saw Rachel begin to stiffen. Doubt slipped into her eyes.

"Actually, our names are on communication channel fourteen of the page you're holding just below ‘ Dale and Tristan Grant ’. Maybe you didn't see it because the gens are in reverse social club on the paper,"Ed said in a friendly way as he leaned his large body in towards the man to manoeuver at the paper.

The usher leaned away from Ed who continued to smile and head to the names. Rachel's expression quickly passed from question, to surprise, then anger and finally to atonement as the slight man begrudgingly acknowledged their name calling were on the list after all, clearly intimidated by Ed.

He gestured for them to figure and they started but Ed turned back and held out his mitt. The man looked at Ed nervously.

"Rachel's ticket,"Ed said with a smile.

"Ah ! Y-yes- ah, let me get that,"he said in a haste and handed Ed the ticket. Ed raised it and smiled at the man. He missed seeing the man flinch but Rachel saw it and enjoyed it. They moved further down the manse.

"I don't know what the ticket is for but all the ladies were getting one so you should hold onto it,"Ed said, oblivious to the man's foiled endeavour to abash them.

The slate went into her clutch purse and she hooked her arm through as they made their way into a vauntingly open area. The theme was Winter celebration so the huge hall was decorated in white and silver. Artfully positioned spot luminousness made the crystallization spark and glitter. Ed was mesmerized and grinned in childlike curiosity. Rachel enjoyed his exhilaration.

They made their way further into the elbow room nodding and smiling to the invitee who looked their way. There was a bar along one paries and people were milling about in small-scale grouping, talking, drinking, laughing, and generally people watching.

"Edward, could you get me a glass of white wine-colored ?"Rachel asked.

"Certainly. Don't leave without me !"he said with a smile and she shook her head.

When he returned with two field glass of blanched wine Rachel was standing beside a very tall, slenderize and cover girl strawberry blonde woman who could have been a little younger than Rachel. She was holding the arm of an equally tall and slim man with greying blonde pilus. He appeared to be much older than his companion. Rachel was smiling broadly so Ed smiled at the newcomers and handed Rachel her wine.

"Thank you Edward ! I'd like to introduce you to the very generous and gracious couple who invited us to the event. Dale and Tristram Grant."

"So this is the man Rachel talked about all through luncheon yesterday !"Tristram said with a big teasing grin, her strong southern accent jumping out at him. Rachel blushed and Ed shook the cleaning lady's hand.

"It's very nice to meet you,"Ed said with a flush of his own.

"Oh my goodness ! I'm just teasing Edward but now I want to get laid all the secrets !"the charwoman gushed with a huge smile.

Dale rolled his eye at his wife's antics and held out his helping hand to Ed.

Ed was a little surprised by the strong point of the man's grip but he equalized the press and something in the man's heart changed. He looked at Ed's hands and noticed they showed some small scar.

"You a wine-coloured drinker Ed ?"Dale's voice was deep and gravelly, the rowdiness a little like what Angie's voice had.

"Not really. I rarely drink but it seems to be the social affair to do. I didn't know what else to lodge,"Ed confessed.

"I'm dry so let's headway over to the bar and get you a right drink,"he suggested and Rachel nodded so he let the man lead him away.

Once they were alone Tristram looked at Rachel with a twinkle in her eye."He's delightful !"

"Yes, he's pretty amazing."Rachel agreed glancing back in the charge Ed had gone.

Tristan heard the love in Rachel's voice and got a little worry. She'd seen other women in the radical downfall in love with their young lovers only to be emotionally destroyed when these young men moved on. In the short clip she'd spent with Rachel at the dejeuner she'd immediately clicked with her. Tristan listened to her inner voice believing to her core that there was wisdom in instinct. Rachel was good citizenry. She and Dale had met so few when they moved here from Lone-Star State. They'd left behind their social connections and had made efforts here to join with the ‘ right hoi polloi ’. Peers from their level of society but there was always something lacking. Some were dull as plain stitch snapper, others had no profundity, and many had a helplessness of lesson time value. She picked up immediately from Rachel that she was more right than any of the ‘ right the great unwashed ’. Now she may be setting herself up for heartache.

Her concern must experience shown on her human face as Rachel reached over and touched her manus."You don't need to care about me. It's good."

Tristan began to apologize but Rachel just shook her pass with a grin."Get to bonk Edward III and you'll understand."

The blond looked curiously in the direction her hubby had taken the Cy Young man.

Ed and Dale were standing at the bar where the older gentleman was schooling the bartender on what a salutary malt whiskey was. Finally two tumbler pigeon were presented to them to his atonement. He handed one to Ed.

"Some flip this drink back and take back it quickly but I personally feel that's an contumely to the craftsmanship. This is your first vulnerability to baffle ?"Dale asked Ed who nodded broad eyed."Then take the aroma first. Careful, even that can have a thrill. Then take a sip, roll it on the tongue then swallow."

Ed placed his olfactory organ over the roller and sniffed cautiously. The scent was like nothing he'd smelled before. Spicy, hot, rich… he took a respectable sip and ran it over his tongue allowing it to slither back to be swallowed. The heat moved down his chest and his center watered a little as he hadn't been expecting that. The tang in his mouth just continued to get better. He looked into the tumbler with a pleased tone. He LIKED scotch ! He looked to the man standing side by side to him and saw that odd expression again. seemliness wasn't here to understand them for him and Ed felt like he was being graded, like he was back in school. He looked the man in the eye.

"Have I done something wrong ? You keep looking at me like my high shoal teachers used to. well, most looked at me in letdown. If you could severalize me how I've offended you maybe I can do something about it."

The older man looked ashamed."I'm sorry. I didn't mean to wee you feel uncomfortable. You aren't what I was expecting. In the past I've seen young men with some of the dame here tonight and these men have always been subdued, egotistical, egocentric sponges. Your hands have seen piece of work like mine. You weren't threatened by my shake and didn't try to show me up by overpowering my suitcase. You haven't tried to bullshit me by pretending to be worldly than your age would typically countenance. I'm sorry if I've offended you."

Ed nodded and looked back to his drunkenness. He sipped some more, following Dale's instructions once more. After he enjoyed the warmth he looked back at the man.

"I don't know any of these other young men. I don't know why they would behave that way. It makes no sense to me but I don't get a lot of people's doings. I guess I'm slow that way."He felt the warmth of the scotch lantern slide along his tree branch and he felt a little more relax. He took the hold up sip and smiled as he set the glass on the retort."That is a very ripe crapulence !"

Dale liked this young man. He was refreshingly reliable and amazingly centered. He hadn't flared with righteous indignation or mistaken bravado. And he understood scotch ! He grinned at Ed and Ed grinned back. He ordered Ed another potable then they made their way back to the ladies. Just before he arrived he looked over at Ed.

"You may desire to nurse that one. malt whiskey is a secure drink that will catch you off guard if you aren't careful with it."

Ed looked at him and nodded seriously.

"Dale ! You're not corrupting this delightful Whitney Young man with that wicked drink are you ?"Tristram chastised her husband with delusive outrage.

"No, I'm grateful he's introduced me to it. It's quite practiced ! He's also told me to be careful with it."Ed exclaimed in defence reaction of the sr. man who was grinning back at him.

Rachel smiled at Ed and took his arm to list against him. He leaned towards her as well, enjoying the feel of her body. He returned the look of passion and Tristan's eyes widened as she watched. She nodded to Rachel.

"Did you want to shoot a flavour at the point they are auctioning off ?"Dale asked.

They made their way around the room looking at the plunder and the older man explained to Ed how a silent auction worked. He was delight to see that Ed wasn't particularly awed by the hugely expensive prizes. They passed the summons bed sheet for a cutthroat looking red sports car and Ed didn't even blink in its direction. Curious.

"Ed, if you don't mind me asking, what do you drive ?"Dale asked.

"A 1980 Gerald R. Ford F150 pickup."Ed said absently as he looked at the next point up for auction. He wondered what anyone needed with a yacht that big. Maybe for a big family outing ? He didn't notice the Old man's delighted smile.

"You're felicitous with your truck ?"

Ed looked at him."Yes. It's been very dependable and I've used it at work for hauling wakeless equipment to the hazardous thriftlessness center."

"Oh ! What do you do for a living ?"Dale asked.

"I work for Drakos heating system and cooling system. I've got my cosmopolitan certification so I can work on any stage of scheme we install or maintain."

"Do you relish it ?"

Ed's face burst into a across-the-board smile."Yes ! It's a swell job !"He realized he should be polite and ask Dale a head as well."What do you do for a keep ?"

The man took in Ed's open expression and saw he was just singular."I'm retired now. I created a few businesses and ran them until they could run themselves then moved on to the following. Eventually I met this beautiful lady and running businesses just didn't appeal to me anymore."

Tristram smiled at her married man and Ed could see the love shining in their eyes. He hugged Rachel just a trivial bit tighter.

There was a gong and people began to move towards the far doors which led to the dining room. They were sharing a table with two early couples who didn't appear to be happy about it. Ed just did his best to be polite but his petition to a heavyset man to go across the weewee jug was ignored repeatedly. He resorted to waving to the man but after an annoyed glance he turned his face away from Ed.

Ed sat back in his chair in surprise. He knew the man saw him. The tables were fairly secretive together so getting up to walk around the table to get to the pee was going to be difficult as well. He pondered what to do.

Tristram and Dale shared a feeling and the older man was about to say something when Ed stretched his arm out to progress to across the table for the jug. He almost had it but suddenly it tipped over away from him. The water splashed across the table and doused the rude man and his equally unpleasant wife.

Ed jumped to his feet and tried to affect to help the sputtering yoke but they just shrieked at him. Dale was immediately at Ed's articulatio cubiti and his presence seemed to submit the spitefulness out of the language the dyad were venting at Ed. They turned and left with what piddling self-worth they retained. The other couple got up and moved to a table across the room which had two undetermined buns. staff quickly appeared and dealt with the pot and removed the place settings leaving just the four of them at the table.

Dale and Ed sat back in their death chair and Ed's case was burning with shame.

"I'm so bad for making such a fit ! I'm such a klutz !"Ed apologized.

"frill ! If that soft touch hadn't been so engaged being a putz and ignoring you he would have stayed dry."Dale said with a grinning.

"Besides, now we have the table to ourselves !"Tristan smiled kindly at him.

Ed felt better and Rachel leaned over and gave him a kiss which certainly lightened his climate. He blushed again but this sentence it was for Rachel.

Tristan smiled at her husband who took her hand in his.

dinner was served and it was delicious. Ed was surprised at firstly by the small circumstances on the plates considering the cost but it soon made sentiency to him as course after course was brought out. Dale, Tristram, and Rachel turned some away when they were brought out though she kept a few just to transfer the food to Ed's plate.

Once they finished their dessert Dale and Ed visited the bar once more to convey back scotch for themselves and wine for the dame. They talked and laughed, enjoying each other's party. Rachel told them all about their group of Quaker and she saw the feeling of yearning in Tristram's middle. She insisted they come over for dinner and taste some of Ed's famous steak seasoning and take on the group.

Dale's eyes lit up with the credit of barbequed steaks and Tristan was thrilled and nodded. The group toasted to celebrate their new friendship.

Several celebrities made words extolling the merit of the Jacob's ladder and everyone clapped politely.

Then the Polymonium caeruleum van-bruntiae labor organizer made their spoken communication and announced the achiever of the silent auction. The yacht went to the couple who'd moved to another table. The red mutant car went to a dude who looked too big to fit inside. The cottage went to another older couple. There were several smaller item and Ed noticed that no one really looked felicitous about the particular they'd bought. He thought that was really strange.

Then the personal organiser mentioned the room access prizes. third prize was a romantic get-away for two at a lavishness all-inclusive couples repair in Barbados for one calendar week. Second prize was a very cute little Italian car. Great for getting around the urban center in. The grand piano prize was a Francisco Villa in Italian Republic worth over a million dollars.

Ed wondered how the Jacob's ladder made money considering the time value of the prizes. He nudged Rachel to get the ticket out of her purse and Tristram was grinning at his fervor. Both she and Dale were holding tickets.

"Didn't you get a slate Ed ?"the older gentleman asked.

"No, I guess he forgot,"Ed said and shrugged. Dale shared a smell with his wife and Rachel.

The organizers began calling out the Book of Numbers on the ticket for third pillage and Rachel's smile began to disappear as each number called lined up with the numbers on her ticket. She sat frozen as the last number was called and it was her ticket ! Ed cheered then blushed at his outburst but Dale and Tristan were right there with him. They pushed Rachel to get up and walk up to the stage to collect her reward.

Rachel's straits was swimming and her skin was tingling madly. She'd never won anything before in her life ! She gave her gens and telephone set number and handed over her ticket. She was giddy with elation and accepted the envelope from the woman standing at the podium after her slate was confirmed to be the success. The woman's smile was wet and didn't range her eyes but Rachel never noticed as she turned back to her mesa and held up the envelope.

Once Thomas More Ed cheered for the beautiful woman dancing back to their table. She looked so happy.

Rachel sat down and pulled the voucher from the envelope. She read it and her grimace dropped."It's for next weekend !"she cried.

"So ?"Ed asked.

"It's a duad holiday resort !"

Ed pulled his earphone out of his pocket and looked at his calendar app. He saw that Mr. Drakos had posted the updated schedule for the shopping building complex. It was Nov 28th. He could stop his inspection this hebdomad and they were not working on the building the following two calendar week so the other trades could work in nibble exclusively.

"I'll be uncommitted,"he said.

"You should exact the just the ticket and go with saving grace !"Rachel said.

"No ! You won, you should get to go ! Besides she has classes."

"Who is Grace again ?"Tristan asked curiously.

"Edward's… girlfriend ?"Rachel said as she looked at Ed for clarity on what he considered thanksgiving to be.

Tristan's eyes went blanket."Girlfriend ? ! ?"

Rachel chuckled and patted her supporter's hand."It's a long story which requires more privacy."

The organizers were ready to announce the slate numeral for second prize. The numbers were read out steadily and Tristan pouted after the tertiary number. When the routine was ended people were looking around but no one moved.

Dale showed his ticket to Tristan who clapped her manpower. He gestured towards Ed and she nodded.

"Ed, why don't you take my ticket since they didn't give you one."

"But you could win that Italian villa !"he exclaimed.

"I already have one,"the man said dismissively.

"Are you sure ?"Ed asked.

"Yes !"

Ed took the ticket from the man's fingers then his center picked up the number on it. He locked eyes with Dale."This is the winning ticket for irregular prize !"

"Yes and if you don't go title the prize immediately they will pick somebody else's number. Someone undeserving."

Ed stood and held the slate up.

"We have a winner !"he heard the organizer say. He made his way up to the leg and faced the fair sex who seemed to be a little flustered as she cracked a grin at him. She validated his tag, took his name and telephony number then presented him with an gasbag. He immediately looked in spite of appearance and found a voucher from a dealership for the sporty little car. He blinked at the woman. He'd never won anything before and didn't really know what to do next.

She softened as she saw his lost expression."You take this to the franchise listed and show them your identification. They'll give you the car. It's all paid for though they may try to get you to buy an extended warranty or something like that."

"Thank you so much !"Ed exclaimed.

The woman gave him a genuine smile at last and he made his way back to the table. He gaped at the couple.

"Why did you just pass on me a car ?"

Dale chuckled."Ed, it cost us nil and we have no need for another car, especially one neither of us would fit into. We're too tall ! You may be a little too spacious in the shoulder joint,"Dale said giving Ed's shoulder width an assessing look.

"Do you suppose grace might like to supercede hers ? I think she'd love the little car."Rachel said."For Christmastide ?"

Ed's human face lit up as he thought of how excited she'd be. He swept forward and kissed Rachel until she was panting. When he pulled back both of their faces were flushed and he was seriously tenting his pants. Rachel glanced down then back up into his eyes. Her look promised a Nox of passion.

Their companions were looking at them in pastime and more than a piffling confusion.

The act were read out for the grand pillage Italian villa and a cheer went up at a table across the large dining room.

As the womanhood claimed her prize Ed noticed the great unwashed were heading for the exit. He wondered if the outcome was over.

Dale leaned over to pick up their attention."There's a very nice nightspot at the top of the hotel attached to the convention centre of attention. We were planning on going up for a drink and maybe do a lilliputian terpsichore. Could we convince you two to join us ?"

Rachel gave Ed a hopeful feel and he just smiled and nodded.

"I'm not a very in force dancer,"he confessed.

Rachel patted his hand and he caught her fingerbreadth and brought them up to his mouth. She gasped quietly as he caressed her knuckles softly. She turned to Tristan.

"Maybe for a brusk patch,"she breathed. Tristan giggled.

Ed ensured his prize envelope was secure inside his jacket air hole and Rachel checked her clutch once more to see her gasbag was there. They followed their friends out of the convention center field into the meet hotel and took the elevator up to the nightclub.

The doorman nodded to Dale and a stewardess led them to a lovely table by the window. They had privacy but could see the dancefloor and hear the music. It wasn't fasting and loud as Ed was expecting. Instead it lent itself to dancing nigh and swaying slowly. He thought he could do that and was actually looking forward to holding Rachel against his body.

"Is this decent secrecy to get an account of who Grace is ? I don't mean to pry but I'm confused."Tristan asked Rachel and Ed. Her husband was watching attentively as well.

Rachel looked at Ed who gave her a questioning look in return."Would you mind if I explained our relationship with our new friend ?"she finally asked.

Ed shook his head. He trusted her so he just smiled.

Rachel looked over at Tristan."Ed was orphaned when he was six and went to live with his mother's full cousin. She had a daughter of her own named saving grace. Ed grew up in their home and fell in honey with Grace. She fell in love with him in return but neither confessed their love to the other."

She took Ed's hired man in hers and smiled at him."I met Ed when he was graduating from school and months later we began a relationship that was initially purely physical. But I found myself falling for him. He's a much best man than my ex-husband ever was. blessing and Edward I came to know with me through destiny beyond their ascendancy. They finally expressed their beloved for each other and grace was the one who told me that Edward had also fallen in beloved with me."

Ed blushed and fidgeted as he rubbed his thumb across the back of Rachel's hired hand enjoying its softness.

"So goodwill is your… minute cousin ?"Tristram asked and Ed nodded."You're in a relationship with two fair sex ?"Tristan asked Ed.

Ed looked at Rachel who nodded to designate it was ok."Six,"he replied.

Rachel's expression changed to surprise and Tristan and Dale jolted."Are you in erotic love with the others ?"Rachel asked him quietly.

He glanced over at Tristan who was almost glaring at him. The vividness of her gaze was a minuscule intimidating."I- I don't know. I'm kind of confused about some, especially Zoe, but I can't deny I have feelings for them. With you and Grace I know it's love. If I have feelings for somebody, even if I'm not sure it's love, shouldn't I say I'm in a relationship with them ?"Ed asked, looking at the three listeners.

Dale cleared his pharynx and shifted in his chairperson. He was a little out of his constituent with such questions. He looked at Tristram hoping she might have an answer but she'd gone silent, watching the young man… and trembling.

Rachel smiled fondly at Ed."Yes, I think it's the responsible thing to do. You should be as upfront and honest about your feel as you can be so no one gets hurt."

Ed nodded as that matched his own reasoning."Could we dance now ?"he asked hopefully. He wanted to get away from Tristan whose gaze was really unnerving him.

Rachel stood up and they made their way down to the dance base. She showed him how to hold her and he followed her measure until they were moving smoothly across the story with the former dancers.

"I don't think Tristram the like me,"Ed whispered.

"What makes you say that ?"she exclaimed.

"I don't know. She was staring at me really hard and she seemed… angry ?"Ed was floundering as he really wasn't good at reading citizenry. If it hadn't been for the intensity of her reaction he might make not noticed. He closed his oculus and just enjoyed the tactual sensation of Rachel in his arms. Soon he calmed down. They danced through another call then they headed back to the table. As they approached they saw Tristan and Dale had their chief together in rich conversation. Rachel looked at Ed who seemed genuinely worried. He stepped up to the table to address the woman.

"I've offended you somehow. I don't know what I did but I'm sorry I made you dysphoric,"he said to her. To Rachel Tristan seemed shaken by his apology.

"I told you. The man isn't playing a game. He's a straight hitman,"Dale said to his married woman. She still looked upset so he continued."You trust your gut. Are you saying I shouldn't trust mine ?"

Rachel and Ed sat down and she leaned towards the other woman."Is your gut telling you Ed is being dishonest ?"

"No. My instinct are telling me to trust my husband's approximation of Edward but… six women ! I've seen too many champion taken in by a pretty face only to be crushed emotionally."

Rachel dropped her middle to the airfoil of the table and took a deep breathing time as she gathered her thoughts. When she looked into the anguish oculus of the woman across the table."Listen, five of those adult female pursued an impeccant young man and by any agency we could excogitate lured him into our beds because we were lonely or bored or looking for a way to feel alive again. We never expected to get in touch emotionally to him or to find individual capable of so much compassion. Prince Edward doesn't lie. It isn't in his nature but you have to be willing to see it. I'm truly good-for-nothing you aren't. Let's go Edward."

Ed looked at Tristan and saw she was trying to say something but Rachel was already moving away. He nodded to the two."It was very nice to run into you both. Thank you for a lovely eve,"he murmured and hustled after Rachel.

He caught up to her and followed her out of the nightclub. They entered the elevator and she pressed the clitoris for the 15th level. They went down three stories, the door opened and she stepped out. Ed followed with a puzzled verbalism. She pulled a room key card from her batch purse and opened the door of room 1510. She looked back and took Ed's script, pulling him gently into the room.

When the door closed behind them she touched a wall electrical switch and a blue-blooded light came up in the room down a small hallway. In the dim light in the residence hall Ed saw Rachel looking up at his aspect."I'm sorry Tristan treated you like that."

He just shook his head and his eyes watched her lips."I want to kiss you."

She smiled and he stepped forward to iron himself against her body. All Nox he'd been wanting to do this. She tilted her head up and his lip gently pressed against hers. He sighed at how mild her oral cavity was against his. He stroked his tail lip across hers and felt her breath catch. He stroked her mouth with his once more and Rachel moaned at his sensual feeling. He lifted his bridge player and stroked the side of meat of her exposed neck. A frisson went through her consistence and she gasped. Then her tongue was in his rima oris and Ed felt his body become lighter as his skin prickled with electricity. He moved his handwriting to her back and allowed them to slide down the satiny cloth towards the curves of her ass.

Rachel's arms tightened their grip on him as she felt his hands descend. When he squeezed her ass she moaned into his oral fissure and kissed him almost feverishly. She missed his paw sliding up to untie the zipper on her dress until it began to slip down her physical structure. She caught it before it fell off and pulled back from his lip with a grin.

"Cheeky fellow !"she grinned then gasped as he moved his oral cavity to her neck.

He felt her pulsation racing under his lips as he kissed his way down the soft skin.

Moaning she let her dress fall as she moved her hands to the buttons of his shirt.

Ed pulled back to regard in curiosity at her bounty being supported by a demi cup bra. The cups barely contained her. He placed his hands under her tits and lifted them reverently. Her nipples appeared over the edge of the cups. He immediately sucked one into his mouthpiece and Rachel cried out in walking on air from the intense sensations. He gently squeezed and tugged on the second nipple as he stroked the first roughly with his glossa.

Rachel clutched at his head and pulled him tighter against her tit, threatening to smother him in her soft flesh.

Ed was tenting his pants painfully so he moved his mitt down to undo his pants. She pushed his jacket back over his shoulders and tugged his bow tie loose. Then off went his shirt as he dropped his pants.

She needed him, now ! She grabbed his hand and moved them out of the hallway into the bedroom proper. They tugged the eternal rest of their apparel off, dropping them at their substructure, and she pulled the comforter from the bed. Ed dragged her onto the bed and worshipped her tits with his mouth and manus until she was squirming with desire.

Then he moved depress. The heat coming from her pussy was vivid and he dipped his natural language into her juice as she cried out, holding his capitulum against her.

"Albert Edward ! Please ! I need you inside me ! Please !"she gasped as she pushed his head away from her sex.

Ed climbed up her eubstance, his eyes filled with raw indigence. She saw his cock bobbing between his ramification. He looked enormous ! He still had issues with his size. The damage done by his peers when he was Whitney Moore Young Jr., being called a freak and a goliath, scarred his judgement, leaving him terribly self-conscious of his size. When fully erect he was at least ten inch in length and dauntingly thick !

He was running that heavy and hot anatomy across the opening of her puss, making himself wet and slick with her succus. She moaned and closed her eyes in walking on air. Her eyes shot surface when the thick head pressed into the possible action and he drove himself three inches into her heat. roll in the hay ! He was spreading her astray !

Rachel cried out and pulled at his organic structure as she desperately wanted more. He knew better and slowly increased the tread of his thrust until he was driving himself into her depths. She was almost frantic by that point and he thought she might finish too soon so he held himself still, his pecker cryptic inside her and she calmed.

He kissed her heavy, his tongue caressing hers, and felt her latent hostility melting in his arms. When he began to move again she fell into a born rhythm with him until they were both feeling the oncoming wafture of ecstasy approach.

"I love you Rachel,"he whispered, looking down into her beautiful eyes.

"Oh Prince Edward, I love you so very much !"she gasped in return as they began to lose restraint over their pace. Their need for release overwhelmed them. Their trunk ground together and stimulate as each reached their limit.

Ed's brawn tightened as he felt upsurge after surge of cum jet from his cock into Rachel. He felt lightheaded from the sudden release and little explosion of light seemed to be flashing behind his eyes.

Rachel's body felt like it was going to didder itself apart. glint rushed outwards from her pussy and she clung to the orotund man who drove bolt after bolt of lightning into her. She cried out and wrapped her legs around his ass and held him tight to retrieve some control over herself. Gradually her judgement settled back inside her eubstance and she lay spent under the weighting of his large body.

Sensing Rachel was finished, Ed slipped his softening cock from her and moved to lie beside her. She gasped gently at his drug withdrawal and settled herself against his incline, kissing his shoulder fondly. He smiled at her and sighed with happiness.

They lay there together, each coming down from the incredible rush.

Ed gradually became mindful of some particular of the elbow room. It was very nicely appointed with comfortable looking professorship, a desk to work at, a orotund cabinet with big doors and drawers underneath. Then he noticed the small suitcases.

"Whose suitcases are those ?"Ed asked.

"Ours. While we were out shopping for our outfits for the party I asked Angie to pack a few item for us for tomorrow dawn. She also got us the room and put the key in my clutch purse."Rachel said with a grin.

"It's nice to have such good ally !"Ed sighed and Rachel giggled. She slipped from the bed to use the washroom then settled back in next to him.

With mutual deep sighs of happiness they slipped into a cryptic, fill sleep.



Chapter 3

Rachel and Ed slept in then made love slowly until they were both deeply satisfied. Afterwards they had a lovely Sunday brunch at the hotel before heading rest home. Ed wanted to tell saving grace right away about her new car but Rachel convinced him to foregather her at the dealership the following day. Grace had stratum but her college was faithful to where they would piece up the car. He could meet her there on his lunch hour.

Monday break of day Ed went to verbalise with Mr. Drakos and arranged to have the following hebdomad off. He had holiday sentence coming and promised to complete all of his review by Thursday. His boss agreed and told him to speak with his daughter to update the companionship calendar.

Lunch time finally arrived and Ed was standing outside a restaurant next to the dealership when grace rushed up to hug him. He hugged her back and when she turned to enter the restaurant he stopped her.

"I just want to show you something before we eat,"he said with a grinning. free grace blinked then followed him across the lot and inside the franchise. He took her immediately over to a footling sports car which looked like the one on the voucher.

"Oh ! It's so cute !"grace smiled.

Ed opened the door and she slipped inside with a smiling. He watched her delight as she touched the controls and got a flavour for the interior.

"May I help you ?"

Ed turned to see a man in a well-tailored courting standing behind him. Grace looked up sheepishly from inside the car.

"Yes, my name is Ed Walter and I'm here to beak up my prize,"he said as he pulled the coupon from the pocket of his work coverall. He pulled out his number one wood's licence as Rachel explained he should do that and the man took both.

thanksgiving's eyes were bugging out as she stared up at Ed.

"Very good sir. If you would be so sort as to comply me to my desk we will make the final arrangement,"the salesman said and Grace's jaw dropped. Ed opened the door of the car and helped her out. He had to put his arm around her to guide her numb organic structure over to the salesman's office and into a chair.

"Ed. What's going on ?"grace said with a trembling voice.

"Remember the Polemonium caeruleum dinner I attended with Rachel on Sabbatum ? I won a door prize,"he said with a grin.

"A car ? ! ? You won a car ?"she squeaked and the salesman grinned at her.

"I won a car, for you,"Ed corrected her.

thanksgiving burst into rip and leapt over to hug Ed who grinned at the salesman whose own smile threatened to rive his face. As seemliness cried onto Ed's berm he handed the man his insurance papers. blessing settled down but she wouldn't let go of Ed's left hand.

"Now, which color would the young madam favor ?"the man said as he handed good will a tissue for her center. He slid the booklet across his desk showing the rouge options.

grace of God was trembling as she looked over her alternative. Ed was pretty sure he knew which one she'd pick. There was a gleaming bootleg color-

"Red !"Grace exclaimed, pointing to a fiery red one.

Ed glanced at her in surprise and smiled. Red it was.

The salesman put the guild in the arrangement and handed them the invoice. Luckily Ed could sign it with his right hand as saving grace still hadn't released his left wing. The salesman left for a bit and returned with Ed's transcript of the bill.

"It will take one to two weeks to get the car to the dealership. We will hold you a claim when it comes in. It was delightful doing business with you Mr. Walter. congratulation again !"He shook their hands and Ed led grace from the building.

"You are too wonderful !"state of grace gushed as she hugged him again.

"Do you have fourth dimension to eat ?"he asked and she pouted as she looked at the time.

"I have to get back to course though it's going to be unmanageable concentrating this good afternoon,"she said with a dazzling smile.

Ed leaned down and kissed her, tasting her sass and feeling her wonderfully soft rim against his.

Finally she patted his dresser and gently pushed him back."ED ! I'm never going to get back to shoal at this rate ! So often for concentrating !"She gave him a quick great deal and rushed away to return to her classes.

intuitive feeling deeply satisfied Ed headed back to study. He had inspection to do. It was going to be a busy day but it was already a skillful one !



Chapter 4

December 1st at last ! As he woke up and stretched, Ed's body was humming with excitement as he knew the holiday were almost here ! He loved Yuletide ! In the past tense he'd only been able to ploughshare the joy with Grace and her mother Shirley, though the latter was more of a Grinch.

Now Ed was surrounded by multitude he loved and there were Thomas Kyd too ! He couldn't wait to plowshare the inflammation with them ! He'd spoken with Carolyn and Stephanie and both were felicitous to let him participate by putting up their light source. What they didn't know was that he intended on showing up in a full Santa Claus suit complete with a well-padded breadbasket. Grace said she'd help him dress up after work. He'd be going to Carolyn's tonight.

He was alone in his own bed this morning as he'd gotten home at 1AM live night. His inspection turned up a job that would hold jeopardized his joining Rachel the come after hebdomad and would take put the projection back at to the lowest degree two weeks. He'd just fixed the trouble himself and reran his inspections. It checked out the second clip but it was well retiring midnight at that point.

Ed grabbed a quick shower, got dressed for body of work and headed downstairs to the kitchen. Grace leapt from her chair and jumped into his arms. Her body felt so good against his and her backtalk on his was… Heaven ! Her big tits were mashed against his chest and he began to render his appreciation for all the wonderful sensations. He glanced at the clock and realized he'd slept in. He moaned as he had to manoeuvre to solve immediately. He set grace of God down on her ft and pulled back from her.

"It's my spell to say I have to go !"he chuckled. Grace's eyes twinkled.

He marched over to Rachel and kissed her tenderly and she gave him a dreamy smile as he headed out.

Traffic was light and he immediately went to speak with Mr. Drakos about his findings the late night.

"Ed ! I understand you were on the jobsite a fiddling former last Nox. The honcho said he saw your truck there at 8PM."Drakos said with a grin. He was so proud of his youngest employee ! The best investment he'd ever made.

"Actually I didn't leave until 12:30 this morning. I found a problem."

Drakos'boldness fell.

"It would give set us back two workweek but I found a work around."

His boss looked expectantly at Ed.

"I worked on it and ran the inspections again. It passed,"Ed informed him.

A huge smile cattle ranch across the older man's face."How a lot longer will you ask ?"

"I should terminate the physical inspection Wednesday Nox. Then it's just paperwork which will take away me until Friday to complete,"he explained.

"Excellent ! Thank you Ed !"the man gushed.

Ed just nodded and left to get back to work.

The day passed quickly and he skipped tiffin so he could assure he was able to will at 5PM. He quickly drove family and found Grace waiting for him.

"shuffle me Saint Nick !"he grinned causing her to giggle.

It took about xxx minutes to get the lawsuit on with the makeup. Grace was brilliant at applying it to name him front aged with rose-cheeked brass and nose. The belly padding wasn't so bad if a little warm. Soon he looked like saint snick and he pranced around the kitchen dancing between Grace and Rachel who were both in stitches. He called Carolyn who said he could add up over any time.

Ed drove over to Carolyn's and drove up her driveway with his lights off to cabbage up on the menage. He slipped out of the car and made his way to the front door. He rang the bell and soon heard the child racing to the straw man door. The door opened and there was Carolyn standing behind her two kids, Gregory and Amelia. Ed thought she looked so pretty tonight and the glow of the candles on the mesa adjacent to the door lit up the blond highlighting in her idle brown hair she was wearing down over her shoulders. Tonight her serious prof spectacles were pushed up into her hair so he had an unobstructed view of her lovely hazel centre. Her wide sass were smiling at him but there was surprise in her eyes.

"HO ! HO ! HO !"Ed said with his best Santa voice.

"Hi Mr. Walters."Gregory said.

"Why are you dressed in a Saint Nicholas cause ?"Amelia asked.

"Ho- Uh, I don't know what you mean ! I'm Santa Claus Claus !"Ed tried again.

"No, you're Mr. Walters,"St. Gregory I began.

"-wearing a Father Christmas suit."Amelia finished.

Carolyn watched Ed's enthusiasm deflate completely. She felt so bad. If she'd known he was going to do the Santa bit she would have warned him."I think you are a delightful Santa Claus. Please come in."

The tike headed back into the playroom as Ed followed Carolyn into the kitchen. They took seats and Ed looked at the charwoman before him, his disappointment plain on his painted face.

"I don't understand. They're young nipper ! Shouldn't they be excited about St. Nick and Christmas ?"he asked.

"I'm afraid you're in a family of anthropologists. Studying homo cultural artifact is what we do. crick and I decided when the small fry were born that we would be open and reliable with them and this included explaining things like the easter Bunny, the Tooth Fairy, even Santa Claus as what they really were."

Ed blinked at her."You explained away the magic ?"

Carolyn tilted her head at Ed and frowned at how unhappy he was."Are you going to be OK ?"

"Sure."Ed sagged a little more."Does this mean you don't put up a Christmas tree ? ornament ?"

"We don't have a tree diagram or have present tense. We take a food contribution over to the shelter on Christmastime Eve. We do put lights up on the menage as that makes the neighborhood flavor so pretty. Could you help us with that ?"

"Yeah, where are they ?"he said, perking up a little.

"In the garage. There's a ladder in there too. The visible light are simple-minded. They just clip onto the evening. The stopper is on the side of the house."Carolyn said as she led him into the service department. He carried the box outside then went back for the ravel. It was cold out so Carolyn scooted back inside.

Ed realized she was right. Putting up the lighter was unproblematic. It took all of 15 minutes even with the width of the house. He put the ladder away and Carolyn met him in the kitchen again.

"Listen, if you're still up for some Christmas cheer, I was just speaking with Stephanie. She's rest home with her tiddler and they were going to put up their decoration this weekend. You might be able to convert her to do it early if you head over there now. Her kids are big Christmas fans too,"she said with a grin.

Ed nodded and smiled at Carolyn. As minor were nowhere in passel he scooped her into his arms and kissed her until she was trembling.

"I saw mammy kissing Saint Nicholas Claus !"Amelia sang loudly from the kitchen door.

"It's still Mr. Walters !"Gregory growled.

Ed set Carolyn back on her foot and she smiled at her kids and shooed them away."Well… that was lovely !"she purred."But you'd better get moving. Stephanie's kids will be heading off to bed soon."

He smiled at her and headed out the forepart door.

It took only a duet of moment for Ed to be standing before Stephanie's door. He rang the doorbell and heard a stampede of feet rushing to the door. It pulled open.

"HO ! HO ! HO !"

"Santa Claus ! ! !"four kids squealed in unison.

"I was in the neighborhood and I noticed you don't have your decorations up ! I have a little meter to spare before my big dark so I thought I'd help ! If that's ok with you and your Mom !"he chuckled merrily.

The Thomas Kyd were in a frenzy. Of course of action they wanted to put the ribbon up, right now !

Ed was loving this. He looked over at Stephanie and was more than than a petty dazzled by her grin. She favored dark lipsticks and nail polishes which contrasted strongly with her blench skin and the brilliance of her T. H. White teeth. Her jet black tousled pixie haircut and the black lashes framing her intensely dark eyes made her skin seem even paler but the cunning upturn on her slim nose and her high cheekbones made Ed think of an elf queen. Not that she was small in height. Both she and Carolyn were around 5'8"with slim toned physiques from persevering trips to the gym but Carolyn seemed a little softer and had slightly larger chest.

He tore his oculus away and rushed after the rampaging kids missing how she bit her lip as she watched him.

They spent the future two hour digging the corner out of the basement, assembling the Tree, hanging the ornamentation and each of the kids wanted Santa to abstract them to string up ornaments up near the top. Once they'd finished decorating the inside of the house they settled down as Santa read them a level then it was off to bed. Each gave him a osculation on the impudence and a hug before they went. Ed was glowing with Xmas cheer as he sat with Stephanie in her kitchen.

"That was fun !"Ed said quietly to Stephanie."Do you have lights for outside ? I could put them up too."

"There's a box in the garage. The ladder's in there too."

Ed found the box and realized the lights were the same as Carolyn's. Fifteen minutes later the lights were up and he put the ravel back in the garage.

"Ed ?"

He looked over towards Stephanie's red SUV. She was in the book binding. The rear derriere were folded down and she was lying in the spinal column wrapped in a cover. Ed blinked in discombobulation. What was she doing in the back of her car in her garage ?

Stephanie was feeling a little goosey. She'd watched her best-loved film the previous night and the scene where the brash young artist made love to the woman in the rachis of a car parked in the ship got her so hot. All she could think of was what it would be like to make get it on to Ed in a car. When Carolyn called to say Ed was coming over the view returned to her creative thinker. Now that he was standing right there in a Santa causa looking at her in confusion she felt silly.

He approached and saw she was naked under the mantle. Naked in the back seat of a car. Something clicked in his store. There was a film he'd watched with Grace years ago about lovers on a boastfully ship having sex in a car. He remembered how awkward he'd felt with seemliness as he got stimulate.

He reached up and pulled his hat, wig, and St. Nick beard off. Stephanie's middle lit up as she saw his mental confusion feed way to a hungriness. He slowly ripped open up the jacket, the Velcro seam parting noisily, and pulled the belly courtship up and over his school principal. He'd gotten a little sweaty under the padding.

Stephanie watched him exposing his shining, rippling muscles as he lifted the padding up and off and she bit her lip. Then she crooked her finger at him.

Ed kicked is boots off and tugged the pant off until he was standing next to the car in just his underwear. Stephanie moved back as he crawled into the back of the car with her, pulling the threshold closed behind himself.

They were so close up in the rear but he was just a little chilly. She touched his bureau, not at all turned off by the light layer of sweat there. She found it highly erotic.

He slid his hired man around her read/write head and pulled her oral cavity to his. She gasped as he gently sucked on her lower lip then she was exploring his mouth with her tongue. Her hand slipped down his chest to progress to under the waistband of his underwear. Her slim fingerbreadth wrapped around the operose barb of his erection. They both moaned as her fingers stroked the duration of his profound member.

It was a piddling awkward moving around in the cover of her car but Ed managed to unloosen up his hired man to move it down her naked curves until he gripped her taut ass. Stephanie gasped in his mouth as he squeezed the brawn and slipped his fingers down between her legs. He found her hot and wet as his digit dipped inside.

"Oh FUCK !"she cried out and stroked him harder.

Ed pushed his finger in deeper and her eubstance seemed to be sucking them in further. He gathered the slick fluids on his fingers then pulled them out. He rubbed the head word of his throbbing cock with the hocus-pocus and pushed Stephanie's hand away as his hand went down the shaft.

"nooky yes ! screwing me Ed !"she said, trembling with need.

"Are you nervous ?"he said, recalling a line from the movie.

Stephanie's eyes flashed to his and a smile spread across her lips."No. Put your hands on me… Ed."

He kissed her hard as he rolled her onto her back. She had no metre to fix as his cock lined up with her opening and pushed just inside. Her battle cry were muffled by their kiss but as he slowly stroked in and out, going deeper with each drive forward her voice got louder.

Ed was no longer chilly. The car was heating up from their bodies and the attempt needed to make roll in the hay without crushing the woman in the small infinite was vivid. She felt so incredibly good it was all Ed could do to slow down and elongate out the experience for her.

He gave up on the kiss as Stephanie was too far gone from the intense sense experience. He was almost fully inside and each stroke made her cry out. As he released her lips she was finally capable to verbalize her joy.

"SO screwing BIG ! OH GOD, ED ! THAT'S SO GOOD !"

He smirked. He was pretty sure that wasn't a occupation from the movie.

His need was becoming too demanding and his rosehip began to twitch on their own with each stab. Their bodies began to slap together and Stephanie's eyes and jaw opened wide though she made no sound. While Ed was still making long slash each ended with their bodies crashing together. The impact on her clit was obliterating her ability to think. She could no longer speak. Everything was hotshot and it was too near. She was very close. She looked to the window and saw they were steamed up just like in the motion-picture show. The two perceptions suddenly overlapped and her eyes rolled back as she reached out to affect the cool glass. Her manus was moving on its own as she crashed through her dismission.

Ed felt her clamping down on his cock and that pushed him over the top. His orgasm rocked through his body as he held her. When he finally came back to his sensory faculty his body shook one more time.

"You're quiver,"she panted quietly as she touched his cheek.

He smiled as he caught his breath."Don't worry. I'll be alright."He moved to lie beside her, relieving the press on her body.

Stephanie rolled onto her side facing him. She put her arm over his eubstance and snuggled up close as she felt a glow wash through her body. He was so in melodic line with her it took her breathing space away.

They lay together for a piece longer then Ed felt himself start to nod off. That was the sign to get moving.

"I'm falling asleep,"he murmured.

"Mmmm… would that be so bad ?"she sighed in return.

"Depends if you're ok with your child finding us here tomorrow morning,"Ed said with a sleepy grin.

Stephanie moaned unhappily then squeaked as Ed's lips found hers in the dim visible radiation of the garage. The squeak became a purr as he nibbled his way across her lips.

"God ! You're going to get me going again and you're right, it's late."Stephanie said after pulling away from his kiss.

The inside of the car was positively aroused and it smelled like sex. Ed looked at Stephanie."Do you have an air freshener for the car ? You drive the kids to schooling in the morning, right ?"

She noticed what he was talking about and realized she should have thought about that. They wouldn't realize the spirit but they would note it. shucks ! She'd just induce to deal with it tomorrow. Maybe it was time to get the car detailed.

They stepped out into the garage and quickly dressed. Ed gave her another sizzling kiss and she pushed him out the door with a big grinning on her human face. She leaned back against the door as her consistence trembled and her heart soared.



Chapter 5

The side by side two days were a blur to Ed as study became frantically occupy. He finished the physical inspections early and started in on the documentation but was pulled aside for former work. As he knew Ed would be unavailable for the entirety of the following week Mr. Drakos had his schedule fully loaded. He was interfacing directly now with the developers of the shopping complex and they had a issue of items they needed his help on. He tried to explain that he was really only certified for heating and temperature reduction but juicy prints and schematics were being passed by him to review. When he spotted the name and address of a different build land site printed on one of the varlet he called them on it and Mr. Drakos got involved. He wasn't too hard on them as he wanted to maintain a good relationship with the group but he made it discharge Ed was a resource not to be taken reward of. And he wanted first dibs on the contract for the new maturation projection they were having Ed review.

All this extra work meant Ed was working past dinner hour for the two 24-hour interval and was pretty trite when he got home. Tonight Rachel told him she was going to break his boss a man of her judgement for running him ragged before his vacation but Ed managed to convert her to let it slide and she headed out to Angie's place.

He was crashed on the couch observance TV with Grace who was resting against his side when the telephone rang. He moved to get it but grace of God patted his leg and went for the phone.

"Hello ? Hi Stephanie ! Yes, he's right here. Is everything ok ?"Ed looked over at goodwill who was frowning as she listened."What assholes ! bent on."Grace handed the headphone to Ed.

"Hi Stephanie, what's up ?"

"Ed, I'm so sorry to call so late but I need your help."

"Sure, what do you require ?"

"I just got my new article of furniture for the original sleeping room. They were really late in arriving, took the old furniture away but they just dumped all the new poppycock in the center of the way and left. The bed needs assembly."

"Do you give tools ?"he asked.

"I think so,"she said but Ed heard the doubt.

"I'll be right over."

"Thank you so much !"she gushed.

Ed got up and kissed grace of God sweetly."It may be a late one."

"I have an other class so I probably won't see you until tomorrow nighttime,"she pouted.

"Since I'm going to be away for a week we're going out to dinner tomorrow night, just the two of us. We can go to that restaurant with all the cheesecakes. This time we skip the appetizer so we can actually try a dessert !"

goodwill's expression lit up with a smile and she kissed him again.

He picked up his puppet box on the way to his truck and swarm over to Stephanie's. She let him in and immediately she saw how run down he was.

"Oh Ed. I'm so good-for-naught to drag you out on a work Night. I can see you're tired. Let's just draw a blank it. I can sleep on the sofa,"she said with a troubled expression.

"Don't be silly. It won't train me long and I'll be away all side by side hebdomad. It's tonight or a week from now."He leaned forward and kissed her brow and she instantly felt comforted. He set off for the original sleeping accommodation carrying his creature with her following.

The new piece of furniture was indeed sitting in the eye of the floor in the large elbow room with the exclusion of the mattress and box spring which rested against one wall and a very vauntingly matted screen TV box resting against another.

"I vacuumed the carpet after they pulled all the old furniture out then they just piled all the stuff here and left."Stephanie complained.

"Not very good service of process. You should let the store know."

"Oh, I intend to do exactly that tomorrow dawn !"she said with a fierce look.

Ed chuckled."Go get ‘ em tiger !"That drew a satisfied smile from her.

"We're going to need to take in some room so let's move this stuff out into the hall, except for the bed,"he suggested.

The two of them were able-bodied to get the pieces out of the bedroom and he had her begin removing the plastic wrapping on all of those particular while he assembled the bed. He really liked the new furniture. It was sleek and contemporary but still solidly built. He read the teaching and realized it was a four poster bed with a canopy. A very amatory spirit. Compared to the heavy dark furniture the room previously had this was a complete change !

He had Stephanie hold some pieces in property while he bolted them together and it didn't take him long to get the frame built. It would be up to her to put the textile canopy over the human body. They unwrapped the box spring and mattress and put both in place.

Then they carried the unwrapped furniture spell back into the room and positioned them where she thought they looked topper.

Finally it was fourth dimension for the TV. There was a bulwark mount stand in another box so he realized that needed installing. He pulled out his stud finder from the tool box.

"What's that ?"she asked.

"It's a stud finder."

She practically leapt over to him and snatched it from his fingers with a giggle. She glanced at it, pushed the button and held it against his chest. aught happened and she pouted dramatically."It's not working… Stud !"She couldn't hold the horned pout and began to giggle again. He reached for the device and she slid it away down his chest. It wailed as it passed his zipper.

Stephanie's eyes flew wide and laughter volley from her as Ed rolled his heart. He plucked the device from her fingers as she gasped for breath from laughing so hard.

"Is that exactly where the bed is going ?"he asked."Once the TV is up that's where it stays."

Still chuckling she walked around the bed and confirmed its location. She nodded at him with a mischievous smiling as she bit her lip. He just grinned and shook his head.

He located the studs and mounted the rail on the wall. They unpacked the TV and he installed the two brackets on the spinal column of the TV. He turned to Stephanie.

"Do you want to run the cables through the wall ?"he asked.

"Would that mean I wouldn't see any dangling wires ?"

"Yes."

"Then yes, I'd like to do that. Is it severe to do ?"she asked.

"No, but I don't have all the part to finish the job. I can create the holes and run the cable through for now but I'll need to come back and add the boxes and paries photographic plate later. To make up it expect neat."

She nodded with a smile and he took some more measure. Then he use a small tongue to cut two holes in the dry wall both next to a scantling but one behind the TV and one a foot off the floor behind the low toilet table. He tucked all the cable system through the top hole and pulled them out the buns gob. Then he got Stephanie to avail him swipe the TV in place. Once it was up he connected all the cables. They moved the dresser back in position and he put the cable system box and a digital mass medium player on top of that and made their connections.

He stood back and looked at his handy workplace. He was pleased with the final appearing. The TV seemed to be floating over the chest of drawers. He looked back and Stephanie was finishing up putting bed sheet on the bed. She looked at the TV and her middle lit up.

"That looks unbelievable ! Thanks !"

Ed pressed the power button on the general remote control and the cable length box, TV and digital player all came on. He bumped the swordplay push button accidentally and suddenly the large screen filled with the ikon of a nude fair sex riding an equally au naturel man. It was artfully done but the expression on the char's face left no doubtfulness that she was enjoying the belligerent sex.

Stephanie squeaked and leapt at Ed to snatch the remote control from his hand. She hit the ability switch and the screen went dark."Yup ! The TV works !"

"A little inquiry ?"he asked with a coy smile.

Her embarrassment quickly turned to a wicked smile and a nod. She really was an imp, Ed thought fondly.

He looked around the room and realized he was all done. Suddenly a huge yawn caught him by surprise. A heavy weariness descended over him and he moved to put his tools away. Once he was all packed up he set down the box and yawned once more. His eyes were really bleary.

"Ed, I don't think you should drive family. You look exhausted. You could… stay here with me tonight. I have this brand name new king sized bed. unused sheets ?"

He looked out in the dorm and realized he hadn't heard or seen the kids all nighttime. He looked back at Stephanie.

"Sleep over at Carolyn's,"she said understanding his unspoken question."Besides I don't mind them knowing you're my… fellow,"she said the close password nervously.

Ed saw her watching for his response. She thought he'd cull her ?

He reached over and pulled her against his chest and felt her relax in his arms."Yes to both things."He leaned back a little and took her boldness between his hands. He gazed into her happy blue middle. God ! She had so very much love in those beautiful center. He felt his own tenderness responding in sort. He knew now. It was love ! She was so energetic, adventurous, and full of impish glee he found her completely addictive.

Another yawn threatened to shatter the cutter bit and she snorted as he struggled to supress it.

"Get undressed before you fall asleep on your feet !"she grinned. He stripped down to his boxershorts then looked at her charmed expression. While he had undressed she'd put on a nightie.

"Do you have an extra soup-strainer ?"he asked.

She nodded and dragged him into the bathroom. He opened the package and they brushed their teeth together. Then they went back to the bed and crawled in.

"I promise tonight will just be for sleeping. I can see you're exhausted. It's just really nice to be able to sleep following to soul after so long,"she said with a quavering smile.

"Now that we're officially girlfriend and boyfriend it's ok for me to tell you I love you, right ?"he said quietly.

Stephanie gasped and her middle filled with split. She leaned over and kissed him tenderly. When she pulled back tears of joy were on her boldness."Yes, Ed ! That's perfectly fine to say ! It's wonderful ! I- I love you too !"

"I was talking with Rachel about my human relationship with the six women in my lifespan. I'm still trying to figure it all out. I have warm belief for all of you but aside from Grace and Rachel I wasn't sure if it was love. You're all so different and my feelings get all jumbled up sometimes. I- I can be kinda slow when it comes to people stuff. It takes me metre to translate feelings. I'm sorry about that,"Ed apologized looking her straight in the optic then another yawn overtook him.

Her smile was brilliant."Go to log Z's big man. We can talk in the morning."

He nodded and closed his eyes.

He felt her snuggle in and sigh contentedly then he was gone.



Chapter 6

The restaurant was just as engaged as it had been on their first off ‘ engagement ’. That was before they'd confessed their love for each early. It had been a pretend appointment but it was a special computer memory for both of them.

Tonight goodwill was wearing the earrings he'd bought for her that Night and she looked ravishing. She'd been losing angle slowly but steadily as she watched her diet and kept her out of work manpower busy with her classwork. She had niggling time to snack as she was completely absorbed with her classes. Rachel had taken her out shopping and found some lovely clothes that fit her less abundant form. She would never be as svelte as Rachel was as it just wasn't in her genes but Ed loved her as she was and she gained an enormous measure of expiation from that fact.

Once more they were almost undone by the variety on the menu. Ed ordered the burrito once more and Grace tried something new. They sipped at their urine as they waited.

"Are you all packed ?"she asked.

"Yes, Rachel did that for me."

"Is your passport up to date ?"

"I still have almost nine years to go on it. Mr. Drakos insisted I get it but I'm not trusted why. I have no postage stamp in it yet."

"Well your first one will be Barbados !"Grace smiled.

"I wish you were coming with us,"Ed said sadly.

"You know I can't postulate the time now. Rachel promised me she'd take on good care of you."goodwill said taking his hand.

He smiled and nodded then lifted her hand to his lips. Her face got a trivial flushed at the feel of his soft caress.

Their orderliness arrived and blab took a plunk for seat to eating the delicious food. Grace did distinguish him about her course, her instructor, and some of the other students.

Ed told her that Mr. Drakos told him that he'd realized he'd been pushing Ed too hard all week so Ed got to amaze around the office today just finishing up his paperwork. He'd only had to work an extra thirty minutes.

Then he told her about the work he'd done at Stephanie's the Night before. He told her that he'd determined that he loved Stephanie and did his best to explain it. She watched him struggle, trying to put into words something that could only be felt. She gripped his hand once more and smiled at him.

"It's ok Ed. I get it. I know what you're trying to say."

The embossment on his expression was enormous. He stuttered from the anxiousness of trying to utter something he barely understood.

"I- I love you blessing. I don't know where I'd be without you !"he said as he leaned forward to hold her palm against his boldness. He kissed the inside of her wrist sending tingles through her body.

She pulled her hand back reluctantly. If she hadn't she might bear jumped him there in the restaurant.

They were too full-of-the-moon for sweet so they missed out once more. Feeling pleasantly stuffed they headed home.

When they went upstair gracility pulled him into a hug in the hall."You should head off to bed right now. You have an early start in the morning."

"Could you sleep with me ?"Ed asked.

She smiled up at him and nodded."Just let me get ready for bed."

Rachel had left them a notation indicating that she had gone to bed early as well so Ed retired to his bedroom and undressed. He pulled on some pugilist to sleep in, brushed his teeth and got into bed.

He was beginning to doze off when his sleeping room door opened and closed as seemliness entered. He felt the mattress shift then her howling softness was pressing up against his slope.

"Mmmmm !"he rumbled deep in his chest as he rolled onto his slope to enclose his arm around her.

"God Ed ! You make me sense so prophylactic and loved when you hold me !"she purred against his chest.

He rolled back onto his backbone and suddenly she was lying on his pectus. He enjoyed the feel of her chest pressing against him and moved his hands down to her ass.

"Ohhhh !"she moaned as he kneaded her soma there. He pulled her up his body until he could kiss her and wasted no time in doing so. Her lips were still the softest he'd ever kissed and his heading spun every meter he did. He couldn't believe she was in his arms kissing him in return. His candy kiss turned demanding and she whimpered with need as she returned his passion.

His hands went under her silky pj arse and he relished the flavor of her skin. He dipped a hand between the good ball and slip his finger along the delicate hide causing state of grace to rive back from the kiss and gasp.

"Oh Ed ! Oh my god !"

Then he slipped his finger's breadth inside.

She clung to his shoulders and tucked her drumhead into his neck as she sucked in her breath. She suddenly pushed back from Ed causing him to excerpt his fingers. She crawled backwards down his torso until her face was above his waist. She pulled down his packer and his thick cock slapped up against his stomach.

Grace moaned as she looked at the beast. She leaned down and ran her glossa along it from the alkali to the sensitive tip and this time it was Ed who sucked in his hint. He was so hard and hot under her lingua. She lifted it up and pressed her lips to the tip enjoying how Ed twitched and shook under her control. She loved giving him delight and loved his reaction to it. She knew she could take him recondite than the others so she opened her back talk and guided his pecker between her brim. She bobbed over the head, dragging her lips over the sore ridge and she felt his cock swell even more. Before he could prepare she agitate forward taking him deep into her mouth until the head bumped into the cover of her throat. A assuage push and it continued down her throat.

"Oh fuck ! good will ! Geezus !"Ed gasped gripping the bed sheet

She slowly pumped him in her throat until she had to pull back to catch a breath. She looked up at him with thirsty middle and saw the blast in his.

Ed reached down and pulled her up onto his chest once more and tugged her pj bottoms off. Instead of kissing her he rolled over on top of her pressing her to the bed. She cried out feeling the heat of his prick against her puss. He reached down and positioned himself at her wet orifice. Pushing forward the first-class honours degree three inches drove inside. She cried out and cohere to him. He was so fucking midst !

He pulled back and aim forward again, his passion taking restraint. goodwill bit down on her outcry as there was some pain involved but there was so often pleasure she'd endure this. He seemed to come to his senses then free grace kissed his neck and he pulled back and get forward again. He was almost fully inside and grace of God's eyes began to roll back from the flood of sensory faculty rushing through her torso. He began to pump in earnest and soon the sound of their bodies slapping together filled the way.

good will was in Heaven. The pain faded to a scope ache as wafture after wave of bliss crashed against her mind. He was a forcefulness of nature, undeniable, hardworking, rampantly and passionate. She clawed at his back and his thrusting became more belligerent until he was pounding her into the mattress. Grace lost track of the number of orgasms she'd had as it seemed like one continuous rollercoaster ride through endless peaks.

Ed ground his tooth together as his dead body clenched and shuddered through a colossal sack. He clung to Grace and kissed her neck, his shaft buried to its base feeling the ripple of her inner wall massaging him. He held himself above her body, not resting his entire weight unit on her but enjoying the soupcon of their hide on cutis. Finally he softened inside her and he pulled back and rested next to her.

"Oh my god, Ed ! That was intense and wonderful !"she exclaimed softly. They relaxed for a bit then thanksgiving made a brief visit to his washroom before snuggling back into bed with him. Any thought process of continuing the conversation was lost as she heard Ed's gentle snore. free grace smiled and settled in for a few hours of sleep until he had to get up.

Chapter 7

Ed breathed in deeply and stared in wonderment at the lush forest the shuttle bus drove them past. Rachel held his hired hand as she enjoyed his excitation. He was in a unlike country ! It smelled different ! It looked different ! The air felt dissimilar ! The stress were different ! about of all it was HOT !

Ed looked over at Rachel and once more admired the sundress she was wearing. She'd changed in the airport washroom while he waited and when she returned it was all he could do to prevent from staring. She looked gorgeous and the cleavage on display made him think fondly of summer back home.

He was still over dressed in his denim and long arm shirt which he'd rolled up at least.

The drive to their refuge wasn't long and soon they were pulling up the tree lined drive to a vauntingly low boost building surrounded by tropical flowers and heavy trees.

Ed followed Rachel into the pressure group while the device driver handed over the bags to the hotel stave. Rachel walked up to the reception desk.

"Hello. Rachel Benjamin Thompson and Black Prince Walters checking in."

The youthful woman smiled at Rachel and looked up her name on the computer."Ah ! Yes, receive ! We have you in one of our prestigiousness Suites."Rachel grinned and signed where she needed to sign. They took a credit board embossment for purchases made. The clerk held up a pretty pinkish band and indicated Rachel should hold out her arm. The woman wrapped the band around her wrist and when the two oddment were beside each other they clicked together tightly.

"This is your room key and identity operator bracelet for the entire resort. If you wish to purchase anything you simply need to impact the bangle to the defrayal machine."Ed stepped forward and she wrapped a larger black band around his carpus."It's completely water proof and it won't accidentally come off."

Ed admired the bracelet."You will need to riposte that once your stay is over no thing how pretty you think it looks on you,"the young cleaning lady teased and both Rachel and Ed chuckled.

She then waved over a young man."Lionel will run you to your room. Please enjoy your stay and if you have any interrogation please find free to ask any of the staff."

Rachel and Ed followed Lionel who was pushing their luggage in a trolley through the grounds. He pointed out the locating of the pools, the cake, the restaurants, the gym, the beach access and the watersport natural action centre where they could record book everything from kayaks to jet skis.

They stopped at the end of the low rise building and climbed the stairs to the quaternary ( top ) flooring and Lionel showed Rachel how to use her bracelet to unlock her room access. The elbow room was turgid and nicely decorated with a orotund four post-horse bed but it was the view from the tumid balcony that made it special. The beach and the sea beyond could clearly be seen and the sound of the surf could easily be heard. Each balcony was buck private with walls between each and there was room for two lounge chairs and two steady electric chair on either side of a small table. Lionel brought up their grip and left them with a smile.

There was a sheet of paper on the desk which indicated there would be a manager's rum slug receipt this even. As it was midafternoon they still had time of day until that.

"Let's go for a walk on the beach !"Rachel suggested and Ed smiled. That sounded amazing ! He'd never been to the beach before.

They got changed and once more Ed was stunned by Rachel's smasher. She had on her glittery bikini with a colorful wrap around her waist. This time he was ineffective to stop his jaw from dropping. He'd put on his grey board shorts with the black, white, and deep grey lines. He liked how they looked on him and was getting used to wearing tight pants though he was still self-conscious when he got excited. Like he was becoming now. He looked up into her patrician eyes and he saw the happiness and expiation there.

Ed picked up the white, short sleeved shirt Rachel had picked up for him for the head trip.

"Let me put some lotion on you before you wear that."Rachel suggested. He nodded.

She squirted some lotion on his hands and he did his front man while she quickly rubbed lotion on his back. He returned the party favor for her then they headed outside. As they were at the quiet end of the edifice, getting to the beach was just a issue of a few sec walk. Then they were out in the sand.

The air coming off the sea was carrying perfume Ed had never smelled before. He was enthralled. They made their way down to the water's edge and they both took off their sandals and carried them as they walked in the warm waters.

"What do you recollect Edward ?"she smiled up at him.

"It's magical !"he said with a grin."Thank you for bringing me here !"He struggled to keep on his middle on her face."Sorry, but you look unbelievable !"

She smiled as a warmness banquet through her eubstance that had naught to do with the tropical sun. He was so proficient for her !

They walked hand in hand along the weewee's bound for a while then turned back, facing the sun. The flavour of it warming their cutis while the breeze cooled them was so shocking after the freezing temperatures at home base. He couldn't plosive speech sound grin. It was brainsick ! Just hours ago he had to be bundled up to be out of doors. Now he was just in his shorts and an afford shirt that left his breast completely exposed in the cinch.

He stole glances at Rachel but she caught him and he blushed. His boxershorts were becoming tight and she stopped them to get a kiss. He tasted her backtalk and succulent mouth as she ground her body against his, feeling his hard cock straining to be release. She moaned with desire and pulled back from his mouth.

"If there was a way to do it without being arrested I'd occupy this in my mouth right now !"she growled sexily at him as she discretely rubbed his cock. She felt him throb strongly in response. ass, she wanted him."Let's go back to the room !"

He nodded, not trusting himself to talk. They started walking once more but now there was a role to their footfall. They rinsed the sand off their feet and slipped their sandals on before they headed back along the course towards the building… coming face to face with Dale and Tristram. He was in one of those loud flowery shirts and lightlessness table shorts and Tristan was wearing a gabardine bikini with a cobweb pitch blackness wrapper around her waist.

"What-"Rachel began in surprise.

"Hello Rachel, Edward III,"the man said, the Texan twang in his rich vocalisation giving away his nervousness.

"hello Rachel. hullo Edward."Tristan looked a slight desperate.

"Did you two win a trip down here too ?"Ed asked with a smile.

Dale smiled and shook his pass."No, we paid replete price and then some."

"Why ?"Rachel asked, her hackles coming up. This was starting to experience like an trap and it was supposed to be a relaxing, fun getaway dammit !

"I needed to apologize. I was so incredibly rude and closed minded. We struck it off so well and then I went and destroyed that trust with my stupid pig headedness. Can you forgive me ?"Tristan pleaded.

Rachel looked at Tristan with wide centre."You flew all the way down here to justify ? You had a week ! You could have just picked up the phone !"

"Believe me I was low for that calendar week but I was also out of town dealing with a fellowship subject. When I got back I knew you'd be heading down here so it would be at least another calendar week. I didn't know that Dale made transcription for us to fly down here so I could apologise look to face. I can't consider how fabulously judgmental I've been especially considering what he and I have to go through."

"You may consume noticed we aren't exactly the same age or even close for that matter."Dale said with a wry grin.

Rachel was feeling a short better but they'd really derail her.

"Why does that issue ?"Ed asked."You're married. You love each other."

The older gentleman smiled gently and Tristan's eyes began to satisfy with tears. She stepped closer to Ed.

"Can you forgive me for judging you ?"

"There's nothing to forgive,"he said with a smile.

Tristan was suddenly hugging Ed and crying on his shoulder. He was still very rigid from Rachel's attentions so he tried to move his hip joint back. She became aware of something hot and hard pressure against her.

"Oh !"she exclaimed and pushed back, automatically looking down."OH ! ! ! Oh gosh ! I'm sorry ! We were interrupting something I think !"

Rachel smiled at Tristan's blush and nodded to the womanhood. Tristan gave her a warm hug then pulled her husband by the hand towards the beach. Dale wore a confused and exasperated expression.

Ed turned to Rachel who took his hired man and led him back to their room. She pulled him to the bed and knelt down before him. She pulled his shorts down and his midst pecker bounced out. She pushed him to a seating position on the bed with his legs wide and her between them.

"God, I've been thinking about taking you in my mouth since we kissed on the beach,"she moaned and wasted no more time. She gripped his shaft and took his pecker as deeply in her mouth as she could oversee. She pressed him firmly against the dorsum of her pharynx until her gag reflex response told her sufficiency ! She eased off and began to pump her sassing up and down on his cock as one hand stroked the remaining part of his cock and her former hand rubbed his balls.

"Oh Rachel ! Oh my god that feels so good !"Ed moaned and ran his finger's breadth through her soft and vivid red hair.

She hummed happily as she kept up the motions, reveling in the heat and solidity of him in her oral fissure. She began to go faster and pump more aggressively.

"Rachel… Rachel… I'm going to… Rachel… you have to stop…I- I'm cumming !"he cried.

She pumped his cock with her hands as he fired his cum into her mouth. She continued until he was finished. She leaned back and showed him what she'd collected in her backtalk. Then she swallowed the mouthful.

Ed picked her up and pulled her onto the bed. He pulled the draw on her bikini and uncovered her large mammilla. Her nipple were soused with excitement. He immediately sucked one into his mouth and caressed the bud with his tongue. Rachel cried out and he moved to her other tit. Rachel's battle cry escalated and he didn't let her recover before he pushed her legs up and stroked her wet pussy with his natural language. He used more force than he normally would as he knew she wasn't as sensitive and needed the extra pressure.

"Edward VIII ! YES ! LIKE THAT ! OH GOD !"

He slurped at her slit, sucking at the mouth and strongly flicking her clitoris.

"FUCK ! Oh god… shite ! nookie ! YES !"Rachel was shaking with indigence as he used his oral cavity on her.

He sat up and positioned his cock over her knavish opening and lowered the brain down into her.

"Oh YYYYYYYEEEEEESSSSSS !"she moaned as he pushed himself inscrutable and mysterious until his pelvis touched hers. He looked down in surprise. He'd never been this recondite in Rachel before. Maybe it was the stance ? Whatever it was it felt incredible !

He began to drive his cock into her like a piledriver, slapping her eubstance with his.

Rachel was going out of her intellect. He had her stage pushed back and he was filling her up with his turncock. More than she'd ever felt before. She was flood out. It was too a good deal but she never wanted it to stop. Her mouth opened but she couldn't speak. Her organic structure began to sway as the wallop against her button rocketed her towards a toothsome release.

"harder,"she managed to whisper and Ed took her at her word. He started to Irish punt her snatch with prompt shallow throw which forced his cock mysterious inside.

"UUUHHH ! FFFUUUUU !"was all she managed as her body clamped down on him and her center shut tightly.

Ed was only able to drive himself deep two more time before his own coming struck. He rocked his hips, grinding against Rachel and she squeaked. She gripped his arms digging her nails into his biceps almost painfully as she whimpered and shook.

Slowly the pleasance ebbed and Ed's cock softened within her. He allowed her ramification to return to the bed and withdrew himself from her physical structure. Rachel was breathing arduous and was covered with a sheen of perspiration. He rested on his side with his head braced on his deal so he could keep an eye on her boldness. She wasn't coming down from this one as quickly as she normally did and he was concerned.

"Oh… my god… Ed,"she finally managed to pant.

"Are you ok ?"he asked gently.

Her heart tracked over to him and she seemed to be struggling to stay on awake."Yes… it just took… more out of me… than I expected. So… powerful !"she whispered.

"Maybe you should film a nap ?"he suggested.

"Yes, that would be dependable. Wake me an hour before the manager's political party,"she said looking up at him in wonder.

"What ?"he asked, puzzled by her expression.

"I'm just marveling at how prosperous I am to have a second luck at love."A tear beaded up on her eyelash.

"Hey ! No crying after sex !"he said with a smile and her face broke into a grin as she chuckled.

"I love you, beautiful lady ! I love making love with you ! I love being with you ! Get some rest and I'll wake you when it's time to get ready for the party. I'm going to get cleaned up and look for a bite. I'm hungry all of a sudden,"he said with a grinning. He leaned over and kissed her lips tenderly and she closed her eye. She was asleep before he'd left the bed.

He took a quick exhibitioner, put his clothes back on and wandered down to the hall. They directed him to the beach restaurant which served snack. He walked across the grounds breathing in the warm moist air and feeling the sun on his face. He found a tabular array overlooking the beach and placed an club for a Warren E. Burger and Roger Eliot Fry.

He was just enjoying the scenery when he heard someone clearing their throat. He looked away from the beach and saw Tristan was standing next to the table. He stood up and asked if she'd like to join him. She smiled and took the offered chair. Ed sat down across from her.

"It was very nice of you to forgive my in the beginning behavior Ed,"she said humbly.

He just shook his head word but she continued on.

"When I married Dale five geezerhood ago I was twenty-five and he was 55. Initially all we had in common was we were both tall… and lonely. I fell for him laborious but my mob didn't understand. My Friend didn't understand either. It was a really severe time for me. I love him with every troy ounce of my being. We click. We're soul mates. I can talk with him about anything. But back then I lost all of my supporting radical. I was basically shunned. They said some really nasty hooey. Dale almost called it off as he couldn't viewpoint to see me suffer but I convinced him I'd suffer far worsened if I lost his love life. We moved away and met new mass. mass who weren't so fast to judge or who also have relationships outside the norm. It was good for a while though I saw a lot of annoyance when these new girlfriends were used and abandoned by the young men in their living. When Dale retired some of those people no longer wanted to be our protagonist. I guess they weren't really friends to set about with. We moved again and met new people. These 1 are worse than the cobbler's last group."Her face showed her unhappiness but brightened when she looked across the board at Ed."Then I met Rachel. I clicked with her. She's good people !"

Ed smiled at that. It was straight. She is.

"I- I reacted badly when I saw you with her. I judged you harshly."The sad tone was back.

"I'd like us to get past this. What can I do to make you believe that I forgive you ?"Ed asked.

She snorted with a grin and looked at the table's control surface. The waitress brought Ed's food for thought and asked Tristram if she wanted anything. She just ordered a field glass of water.

Once they were alone again Tristan looked at Ed with a prankish grinning."You could have me some french tike. Then I'd know you've truly forgiven me."

"MY FRENCH shaver ! ? ! YOU ASK TOO MUCH !"Ed gasped in mock outrage.

Tristan outburst into giggles and Ed pushed his plate towards her.

She took some and hummed happily as she ate the crispy fries. The waitress returned immediately with her weewee and Tristan thanked her.

Ed dug into the burger and smiled as his taste buds came active. He made quick work of the Burger and Tristram watched in awe.

"You must induce really worked up an appetite-"she froze as she suddenly recalled what he and Rachel had been doing."So where is Rachel ?"she said then bit her traitorous tongue.

Ed blushed and looked at the woman across from him."Taking a nap. Where is Dale ?"

"Taking a nap- not because we had sex- I mean, he likes to take a nap in the afternoon. He says it helps him to be sharp at dinner."Tristan was beet red and had twisted the paper napkin into shreds.

"Not awkward. At all,"Ed smiled.

Tristan fit into giggles once more and slack."I'm really looking forward to meeting the rest of Rachel's Friend. Can you secernate me about them ?"

"Sure ! I think Angie is Rachel's best friend though she also hangs out with Zoe. The three of them can be pretty barbaric together I'm told. Angie's husband used to be a rock star but he got sick and died. She's a lovely fair sex. She has a daughter named Isabelle who was going to University but isn't right now. Zoe also has a daughter but she's in prison house right now for snatch and Assault & battery."

"Oh my god ! Who did she abduct ?"Tristan gasped.

"Me."

"What ? ! ?"

"It was for a sorority house or… something like that ? She drugged me and put me in restraints so she could use me to frighten the new pledges. The drugs were really rough on me and I was off work for a workweek. I understand her Father of the Church was a bad influence on her. He's serving a life sentence for slaying I think. But Zoe isn't like that at all. She's… she's…"Ed's heart and creative thinker were doing flips when he thought about Zoe."I'm having bother describing her but you'll like her. I hope I haven't frightened you off. Zoe's good mass too !"

Tristan was staring at Ed in blow. He'd been tortured by the woman's girl and he was still having a family relationship with her. Her oddment was going through the roof !

"Stephanie and Carolyn are best friends that live in the neighborhood and hang out with us. Stephanie has four grand kids but her husband cheated on her multiple multiplication so she's divorced now. She's so full of life and fun ! She really likes movies."Ed suddenly blushed as he thought he might have said too much. Tristan watched this with interest.

"Carolyn was an anthropologist and lived in the jungle with kinship group when she was younger. She has an awe-inspiring tattoo on her backrest which is the alone written record of a lost kindred's language. She writes record book now. She has two tike and her husband recently died. He was badly beaten by the friends of the gentlewoman boys he was having sex with in Kingdom of Thailand. He died of his injuries. That means Carolyn is a widow. She's really smart and very skillful because she never makes me palpate dim !"

Ed frowned in thought for a second then looked at Tristan once more."Sometimes another neighbor hangs out with us. She owns the first home base on the street. Mishka Shyamalan. She's a surgeon at the hospital. She told me she's the best one there. She's dating blessing's just friend Scots heather. They're a really cute couple !"

"Oh Ed, now I really want to meet them ! They sound wonderful !"Tristan gushed with a big smile.

"There was another neighbour whose name is Victoria. I thought we'd be adding her to our radical but her husband was a very bad man. He was a judge but he'd killed a man ! He was apparently not very nice to her either. He was going to obliterate me as he thought I was having an amour with her. In the end Victoria shot him dead and now I think she's in prison too."

"You weren't in a family relationship with her ?"Tristram asked.

"No ! She was married and had two girl ! I'd never snap off up a marriage."Ed said vehemently.

Tristan saw Ed had a strong moral reach even if it didn't always conform to beau monde rules. She snatched another fry from his plate and he misrepresent scowled at her menacingly. She winked at him and thought about how he brightened up talking about the youngster.

"Do you want child of your own ?"she asked.

"Yeah, one day. If Grace wants one,"he answered.

"I think you'd make a groovy dad,"she said honestly watching him take the compliment with a shy nod and smile.

"What about you ?"he asked.

Tristan winced and Ed immediately felt horrible for opening his mouth."I'm sorry, I shouldn't have asked that."

"No, middling's fair. I asked you the same question,"she said."We tried a few old age ago but… it didn't work."

He nodded and they both looked out at the beach.

"I've never been to a beach before today."Ed said quietly. He was thinking of Grace and wishing she was here to fall in them. He would ingest to bring her on a tropic vacation one day.

"Never ?"

He shook his head."We never had any money to traveling and there are no beaches where I live. I've never flown anywhere. I've never been on an island before. This is the first clock time I've been away from home."Suddenly a wave of homesickness washed over him and he gasped as he gripped the sharpness of the table.

Tristan recognized what he was experiencing as she'd gone through the Saami thing when she and Dale first moved away from her champion and family. A sense of deracination. She reached across the table and took his helping hand."It's OK, Ed. This opinion goes away. Home is still there and you will go back to it soon. You're just feeling a lilliputian disconnected. It happens. I've felt that way too. take heed to my articulation. Concentrate on what I'm saying to you."

Ed's pale blue eyes fastened on hers and she suddenly felt his full attention locking on her. It was almost real. She needed him to make out back to the now.

"spirit the breeze on your face. finger the warmth. The table tone smooth under your hand-"

"Your hand is strong but very easy. Your rings are tough and smooth. Your centre are down in the mouth but flecked with gold…"he seemed to relax then he looked around like he was waking up. He glanced at his mitt in hers and pulled his hand back with a flush. He looked at the time."I think I'd better go wake up Rachel so she can get ready for the party. Are you and Dale going to be there ?"

She smiled at him."Yes, we'll be there. Don't let him trick you into drinking the difficult poppycock !"she teased.

He grinned."I read they're serving punch. I should be good with that."

"Oh boy,"she thought.

They got up and went their own ways. Tristan walked slowly back to her way to give herself fourth dimension to think. She really had been completely wrong about Ed. He was as innocent and genuine as Rachel said. She couldn't pin down what it was about him that made her immediately want to protect him. It was a ludicrous concept considering his size. That thought brought her back to that moment when she first hugged him by the beach. He was a large man in more than one way. Dale was also a large man so she knew what she was feeling. No uncertainty Rachel enjoyed his tending. The old pang surfaced as she thought about Ed's question about children. While she kept it from her husband she really did require a fry of her own. To feel it grow inside her. To bring it into the world.

She savagely pushed that thought aside. It wasn't meant to be.

-=-

The manager's rum lick party wasn't what Ed expected at all and the biff was strong ! He'd had two already and his head felt suspicious.

He saw Dale and Tristan coming down the route and he smiled and waved, spilling some of his drink. They grinned back at him.

"I see he's found the rum punch."Tristan smiled at Rachel who was absolutely glowing tonight.

"Yes and he's stopping at two,"she stated in her no-argument voice with a lead of a smile.

Ed bowed his brain in bullshit pity."They said it was punch !"

Tristan giggled and Rachel relaxed. Something had passed between her and Ed. The hesitation, the holding back was gone. She was open to Ed now and Rachel was capable to relax. Dale was also decompress and looked splendid in his black linen paper shirt and T. H. White linen bloomers. Very dapper for a coach's political party. Ed was also very sharply dressed in his tan explorer's shirt and khaki pant. Rachel had on her gold cocktail dress which drew Ed's regard frequently as well as former nearby optic. Tristan looked splendid in her red cocktail apparel as it showed off her shapely, long legs.

The new arrivals were handed their rum punches and Ed gracefully refused a successor for his empty glass.

"What do multitude do at a manager's Rum slug Party ?"Ed asked looking around at the early node milling about."Is this it ?"

"It's a luck to mingle and gather new people. I believe the managing director actually makes an appearance and greets the guests."Dale replied.

Ed asked a passing game waitress for a methamphetamine of water. She returned with one in moments and he thanked her.

Rachel gave him a smile and he winked back.

The managing director took that moment to arrive and he did make a short spoken communication welcoming everyone to the repair and ran through a list of bodily process they would be offering. Ed perked up when they mentioned going on a cruise. There was a political party gravy boat and a catamaran cruise. Either appealed to Ed. He just liked the thought of going for a ride on a gravy boat. Once the director was done they decided to head over to the dining way. They got a table for four overlooking one of the kitty. Very few mass were in the pool at this 60 minutes. They looked over the bill of fare and placed their order of magnitude. Ed decided to try some Fish and Dale recommended the grouper.

Once the radical was alone again Ed looked around the table."Anyone interested in those cruises they offered ?"

Rachel nodded as did Tristan. Rachel said the catamaran as Tristan said the party boat. They chuckled.

"OK, it's settled. We do both."Dale grinned and Ed's heart lit up.

"Tomorrow we were thinking of renting a car and driving around to see some of the sights on the island. You're welcome to join us."Dale offered.

Rachel looked at Ed who nodded."We'd be delighted,"she said.

"I'd also like to pound around Bridgetown to do some shopping sometime this week."Tristan said.

"Ooo ! count me in !"Rachel grinned and Ed rolled his eyes.

Dale chuckled as he felt exactly how Ed did about that. He had a thought."Maybe the peeress could go shopping and the men could try our hand at deep sea fishing."

"I've never fished before,"Ed said.

Dale put on a tragic expression and looked at the lady."Now we have to go fishing !"

It was Tristen's spell to roll her eyes.

Dinner was Delicious and Ed thanked Dale for the suggestion. He really enjoyed the grouper !

They went to the bar and ordered drinks. As it was almost time to plow in for the Night Ed could consume another drink. They did a lilliputian dancing and Rachel told Ed she was done after two. He went back out on the floor with Tristen as Dale wanted to sit out this one as well.

"Everything ok ?"he asked when they were alone.

She glanced at his perceptive eyes and smiled."Yes, we were just a niggling too enthusiastic this afternoon and I'm feeling it now."

He nodded with a good-hearted smile. Her supercilium went up."Oh ! Not today but there have been time. They have to a greater extent energy."

"Like kids."Rachel said absently.

"Do you have children ?"he asked.

"No, I discovered early on that I wouldn't be able to ingest them. I think that's one of the intellect my ex married me. He didn't want any more kids. He had the one son. That was enough for him. I've always wanted one."Rachel said sadly.

"So does Tristan."

Rachel looked at his sad expression."But…"

"I'm the Same as you. Not able,"he said looking away."She says she is ok with it but I've seen the pain sensation in her heart when she thinks I'm not watching and soul walking by with a baby."

The song ended and the social dancer returned to the table. Dale wiped his sad expression away and gave his wife a grin."I'm pooped,"she announced.

"meter to hit the hay ?"he asked and she nodded.

"wellspring, we'll see you at breakfast. 8:30AM ?"Dale asked and received nods.

-=-

After breakfast the following day the four sat in the third house waiting for a man to add them the rental car. They'd discussed what sites they'd sojourn and settled on a duty tour of the outer margin of the island and stopping along the way. The brute heyday Cave was at the most Northern tip of the island. The rock shaping at Bathsheba were on the east coast. Rex Harrison's cave was almost smack dab in the eye of the island so would require a recreation inwards. They just wanted to see the island and a drive through the nation seemed to be the best way to do it.

A slim aged man approached them with a clipboard and car keys and sat with them to fill out the paperwork. When they discovered the car was a right hand drive fomite Dale was a little nervous so Ed offered to aim. They switched to Ed's license and Rachel's for the second day of the rental as she'd parkway Tristan into Bridgetown tomorrow for their shopping day. Dale had already booked the sportfishing expedition the observe day. The paperwork taken forethought of, they made their way out to see the small car they'd rented.

"It's cute."Tristram said and Dale looked at it with concern.

"I don't think I've ever been in a car this small,"he grumbled.

There was a lot of deoxyephedrine so they'd certainly have an unobstructed eyeshot as they drove. They piled in, ma'am taking the back seat to chat, and headed out. They'd agreed to avert the bigger highway as they wanted to remove a tedious pace and see the island more intimately.

Driving on the left felt a small Wyrd at first but Ed was concentrating hard and it clicked into place. They used roundabouts instead of four way stops so that also took a minuscule getting used to but once again Ed saw the pattern and slipped into it.

Dale was a nervous passenger but Ed's natural composure and lack of hostility put him at ease. Ed was a safe driver seemingly lacking the recklessness of youth. Soon Dale was capable to brush off the drive entirely and just relish the view though he was foreman navigator with a crappy map.

The resort was on the southern end of the island and they'd decided to travel clockwise so their first challenge was navigating through Bridgetown. The chapiter was declamatory and occupy but they made their way through it with only a few incorrectly turns. Ed never lost his cool when the directions he was given pointed him the wrong way and he got them back on the path smoothly each time. Everyone slow down and there was a lot of giggling going on in the back seat.

Finally they exited out the northern side of the city and were on their way. The Waters on the western side of the island were flat and chill out contrasting to the waves they had on the southern bound. It looked so serene. Ed preferred the Wave.

They reached the point where they had to move onto small side roads to prepare their way further north. Eventually they pulled into a large gravel parking lot. They saw the sign for the Animal Flower Cave. Getting out of the car they heard the clank of the surf against the rock 'n' roll and they made their way forward to see the rough in sea. Dale pointed out that heading north from here you'd only find the open piss of the Atlantic Ocean until you reached the east glide of Canada. That was a very expectant area of H2O. Heading straight person Orient you wouldn't see land until you reached Africa. Barbados stood alone, well east of the curving arc of Caribbean islands.

They paid their admission and followed the scout down the steps into a cave which was open to the northern exposure. Ed helped Rachel and Dale helped his wife move around in the cave. Trish had a small camera and their guide took pictures of the group for them.

Once back up at the car they looked at the map again and worked out a way to reach Bathsheba through the pocket-sized byways. The east coast of the island bore the brunt of the wind and wave and its furrowed beauty brought smiles to their faces. They stopped along the way so Tristan could take pictures.

Bathsheba was lovely. They parked and walked along the beach and took moving-picture show of the huge rock rising out of the surf. Everyone was feeling a short athirst by this point so it was back to the car to map out their next target. They decided to aim for Crane Beach as there was a resort hotel nearby where they could buy lunch.

The ride was scenic and the beach was lovely but Ed's stomach was impatient for dejeuner. They found the restaurant and once more consistent some astound seafood. Ed was wondering if he'd be able to make meal like this at home.

Dale and Tristan were feeling very good about the day so far. Rachel and Ed were excellent locomotion familiar. Easy going, fun, with adequate news and wit to make conversations interesting. They also seemed to halt the Same note value as them. They were aspirer that they'd found the beginnings of a new sociable circle.

George Harrison's Caves was going to take some life-threatening navigating from Grus beach so they got out the map while they ate ice emollient for dessert and went over possible routes. Rachel dripped ice cream on the map and Dale and Ed shrieked in mock outrage at the difficulty of reading their impossibly poor map now that it had ice ointment stains on it. Much giggling ensued from the ladies. Once they settled on a few possible routes, knowing they'd get lost a few times, they headed out.

They were right. They did get lost but that only added an additional thirty minutes to the trip. They eventually found the tourist position and parked the car. There was a carnival amount of money of other tourists on the duty tour which was amazing as the caves were sang-froid and beautifully lit. They rode in a trolley car from stage to level on a suave route metro. Water dripped on them from the ceiling adding to the ambiance.

Once they were back on the airfoil they decided to head back to the resort. Now it was ok to take the faster main road to bring back but they had a parkway through the scenic countryside first to reach it. It didn't take long to get back once they were on the main road and bypassing the city.

Ed parked the car and handed the keys to Rachel as she'd be the adjacent driver. She was feeling more confident now that they'd driven through Bridgetown and she'd seen where the world parking was located.

They agreed to satisfy for dinner and went their separate ways. Ed told Rachel he'd sports meeting her at the room as he wanted to check out the gym first. He gave her a kiss then made his way over to the building where the equipment was located. They had a well number of political machine and he tried some of them out. Thirty minute later he felt a footling better having gotten in a workout. He was sweaty but he'd deal a shower when he got to the room. He pulled off his shirt as it was clinging uncomfortably to him and walked across the property. He saw Tristan walking towards him.

"What happened to you ? You're… wet ? Did you go swimming ?"she asked taking in his red face and wet muscles.

"I just did a little working out in the gym,"he said, pointing back over his shoulder.

She saw how pumped his musculus looked and smiled."Driving all over the island wasn't enough of a exercising ?"

He snorted."Hardly ! I'm going to go take a exhibitioner. See you at dinner ?"

She nodded and watched him jog away. Damn !

Rachel was just stepping out of the shower when he arrived so she stepped back in to wash his binding, his sides, and, oh what the infernal region, his cock. She stroked him skillfully as they kissed deeply until he sprayed his cum all over her stomach. He smiled at her as he panted and she rinsed off. She indicated she was good and left the shower to dry off and do her hair. Ed finished up in the cascade and got dressed for dinner.

Rachel was wearing her red sun dress which accentuated her breast and Ed froze when she came out of the washroom. She grinned."Seriously Edward, you'd think you've never seen breasts before."

"It's- when you- the dresses you wear. They're so lovely and do such… amazing things with your…"Ed stuttered and she felt that familiar zing go through her. She prowled over to him, watching him twinge, mesmerized by the motions under the smooth fabric. She pressed her body against his and he moaned.

"We're going to be former for dinner. Let's go,"she said with a grin. He whimpered just a petty and she walked away with an extra spring in her step.

Their champion were already seated at the table when they entered the eating place. Ed was walking behind Rachel and her smile was lighting up the room. Ed's aspect was looking a minuscule pink and his center were having difficulty staying off of Rachel's ass.

Tristan smiled knowingly.

Dale had his intuition as well but kept his off his aspect."Good evening Rachel. You look very fetching in red,"he said. She nodded her head teacher towards him with a smile.

Taking his cue from Dale, Ed smiled at Tristan and saw she was wearing a daring and glittery Ag dress that dipped way down in the front. She smiled at him as he swallowed."Good- good evening Tristan ! That wearing apparel looks unbelievable on you !"he blurted. His face went deep red from embarrassment. Not gifted with a silver glossa at all !

Tristram's surprised grinning was invaluable. Her boldness bloomed red as she saw his admiring gaze and his embarrassment. Dale chuckled at her.

"If you are going to wear something which flatters you so much, you should expect to be admired !"he teased.

She gently swatted his arm and glanced at Ed who was struggling to sit with his trouser being so tight. She looked over at Rachel who just smiled back and shrugged.

They decided to guild a bottleful of wine with dinner and this metre Ed went with penne pasta with a bolognaise sauce. He was getting a minuscule too much seafood and needed a change. Rachel switched her order to the pasta as well as it sounded so good.

The vino arrived and they toasted their successful day.

Ed really wasn't a wine drinker and spotted a couple a few tables over boozing tall, frosty White person potable with little umbrellas in them. He asked the waitress to add him one of those and Dale shared a grin with Tristan.

When the drink arrived Ed took a sip."Mmmm ! This is really good ! I can taste rum in it but it's also sweet and I taste cocoanut. It's like a slushy so I'll have to fend off brain freeze."

"It's a Piña Colada. Depending on how much rum they use it can be deceptively strong,"Dale suggested with a smiling. Ed nodded and smiled as he slurped up the confection drink.

Dinner arrived and they talked about the land site they'd seen on their drive. Dale mentioned that he'd taken the liberty of booking them on the catamaran cruise on Tuesday, the day after tomorrow and the company gravy boat on Thursday which would kick in them Friday to retrieve from the company gravy holder. That got the madam giggling once more. Wednesday was unresolved. Rachel immediately called it a beach day and everyone nodded.

They finished up their dinner and ordered footling bowls of ice emollient for dessert. Ed ordered another Piña Colada as well.

"What fourth dimension do I cope with you in the dawning tomorrow for the fishing ? It's a pass of dawn thing, right ?"

"They don't do ‘ crack of dawn'down here."Dale smiled."We'll get picked up in the lobby after breakfast. They drive us to the gravy holder and we go out on the sea with our templet. I think there are two early the great unwashed signed up to go fishing with us on this charter."

Ed nodded and sipped at his drink. Damn it was good !"AAAugh ! Brain freeze !"he hissed.

-=-

The following morning Dale and Ed waited in the lobby for their ride. The ma'am had decided to sleep in and have a late breakfast so it had just been the two men. Earlier Ed had gotten up to go to the gym to solve his musculus. When he was done he'd spotted Dale coming back from his run on the beach. They'd waved at each other and went to their room to get fix. Rachel insisted Ed bring along the bottleful of suntan lotion as his fair skin burned easily. She got out of bed and rubbed some on his back for him, got a kiss, then she went back under the covers.

So now they waited. Ten arcminute past 9AM a man walked into the anteroom, spotted them and gestured for them to accompany him. They walked out to the front and saw a van waiting. The side of meat door was open and two ladies were sitting on the middle bench. Ed squeezed himself past them into the back up seat and Dale followed. The driver closed the door and immediately got them on their way, making up for the lost time.

"Good morning ! You the hoi polloi going fishing with us ?"Dale asked.

"That's right,"the older of the two drawled.

Ed blinked at her thickset emphasis. She seemed to stretch her vowels out. It was fascinating !

"I'm Dale and this is my Quaker Ed. Should be pretty easy to recollect those."

"I'm Sydney and this is my daughter Chloe,"the cleaning lady said.

"daughter ? ! ?"Ed blurted as he'd badly underestimated the cleaning lady's age. She dressed like her daughter. He'd noticed she had a tightly toned eubstance like her daughter's. Both had long jet black hair. They even looked alike though Chloe had larger boobs in her bright yellow bikini top. Sydney was wearing a hot garden pink bikini.

"Ooo this one's flirty like me ! I think I'm gon na like him !"Sydney grinned wickedly over her tail end at Ed.

Dale saw Ed's flush and realized he wasn't flirting. He thought he'd better change the subject quick.

"Have either of you done deep sea fishing before ?"he asked.

Chloe just shook her heading but Sydney tore her eyes away from Ed to reply."No, we're Virgin to the fun,"she said with a grin. Chloe rolled her eyes at her mother's innuendo.

"That makes four of us then,"Dale said. The number one wood swung around a box and both Dale and Ed grabbed the place to brace themselves. Sydney caught the wedding stria on Dale's fingerbreadth and zip on Ed's so she tucked that information away.

The van ground into the gravel parking lot by the loading dock. The driver shut off the van and hurried around to the slope door and opened it. He helped the two peeress out with a big smile and walked with them over to another man, big and barrel chested, tanned and bearded, obviously waiting for them. Dale and Ed pulled themselves free of the van and joined them.

"howdy ! I'm Captain Dan and out there is my lovely ship ‘ The Silly rump ’. Named after my late wife, may Poseidon keep her psyche,"the headwaiter said in a loud booming representative. The dame were eating it up and Ed had a grinning on his face as well.

"come aboard. We have an hr's journey to get to our spot, an time of day to angle and an minute's journey to get back !"He froze dramatically and looked each in the eye."That's rightfield, a three hour tour. A three hour tour,"he said with a dramatic timbre. right back to a effervescing voice."I was kidding about the three hour. We'll be out there all day. You can call me Skipper."He pointed at Ed."You look like a Gilligan ! Come on Little Buddy ! All aboard !"

With that he stormed away to his boat and they all followed. He gestured to his foremost fellow standing by the bow of the ship as they approached and the man untied them from the dock.

Once they were settled in the captain introduced his outset mate as ‘ the Professor'and wasted no more fourth dimension to get them going. Soon the boat was up to fully stop number, bouncing over the waves. The noise of the motor made talking hard but not unacceptable. At least they were sheltered from the wind inside the cabin.

There was a small mesa inside the cabin with a wrap-around terrace. Sydney and Chloe were sitting facing the backrest of the boat, Dale had slid in next with his back to the side windows and Ed was next to him.

It suddenly occurred to Dale to ask Ed if he ever got seasick but it was too late now. He watched the vernal man who was just taking it all in. No polarity of trouble yet. Dale had been on a numeral of gravy boat in his life and no retentive had trouble. The ladies seemed all right as well.

The prof offered everyone a potable and Ed took a bottle of water. He promptly spilled it all over his bureau when the ship bounced over a knave wave. He pulled the shirt up and over his straits to wring out the H2O and failed to detect the big eyes and giggling from their fishing companions.

Ed realized he was more well-heeled with the shirt off so he folded it and tucked it into the small bag he had with him for carrying his tan application. He smiled at Dale and nodded to the peeress who hadn't taken their eyes off of him.

"So what brings you down to Barbados ?"Sydney asked Ed.

"Rachel won a workweek's stay at a stamping ground here,"he said something out the windowpane dragging his attending away for a second.

"Rachel ?"

"Oh ! Sorry, my girlfriend,"he clarified.

mother looked at daughter."She doesn't like fishing ?"Sydney continued.

"Rachel and Tristram, Dale's wife, are shopping in Bridgetown today."

Sydney smiled wickedly."So while the girls shop the son play."

Dale thought he might deliver heard an innuendo in there but he opted not to say anything. They still had a long day ahead of them. No horse sense in making an issue so early on.

Sydney caught the eye of the prof and got a beer for herself and her girl. Dale accepted one too. With a glimpse at Dale Ed took one.

"Do you drink beer, Ed ?"the older man asked.

Ed recalled a football company after winning the State Championships. He drank too much beer and was tricked into being exposed before some of his squad mates and their girlfriends… and Rachel. It wasn't a completely bad memory he supposed."I've had it in the yesteryear. It's ok."

Sydney raised an eyebrow hearing the exchange. It made her queer about the big man.

"Not a big drinker Ed ?"

"Not really. I'm being exposed to new affair on this trip though. Dale showed me good score which I really like. I love Piña Coladas. I don't like wine. I love grouper ! I like walking on the beach."

"You've never been to a beach before ?"Chloe said incredulously as her first-class honours degree news to them.

Ed looked at her."No, this is the first fourth dimension I've ever travelled anywhere."

"wellspring here's to traveling and meeting new friends !"Sydney raised a toast.

Ed lifted his beer with the others. He recalled the last meter he drank beer there was a lot of toasting going on too. They drank and Ed was surprised by the taste. His brow went up and he looked at Dale."This is near !"

The older man smiled."Yes, it's full beer. Likely a lot better than the beer you had at home."

Ed took another sip and savored the rich people flavors.

Sydney and Chloe were smiling at him across the table. He smiled back."So what brings you two to Barbados ?"he asked.

"Fishing."Sydney said with a crooked smiling looking at Ed's chest. Chloe shook her head.

"We're just taking a female parent daughter vacation. I work in the travelling industry so I get discount charge per unit on flights and hotel accommodations. Home was getting- we needed to get away so we came here."Chloe sent her female parent a warning glance but Sydney just waved her off and took another potable of her beer. She then began to adjust the cup of her bikini and mark Ed's eyes catching the motion. She smiled slyly.

Dale could see the mother was going to be hassle but he wasn't going to intervene unless it looked like Ed needed assistance.

Chloe watched her female parent fuss with her bikini top and saw Ed's care. She smiled in challenge to her mother then leaned back on the bench to dilute her arms above her head. This put a considerable total of song on her own two-piece top. Her heavier tit pressed against the fabric and her nipples stood out in assuagement against the taut fabric, the mammilla piercings especially evident.

Dale wore a elusive smile on his lips seeing the battle waged between the two women. mother and daughter competing was as natural as fathers and Son he supposed. Ed was squirming as he took in the show, no longer able to tear his middle away.

Ed couldn't bear the pressing in his drawers. They were new and had very lilliputian springiness. He should have worn the Lycra jammer suit though that was also just a piddling too revealing. He had to stand up to relieve the pressure level.

"I- I'm just going to get a little air."Ed said and slid out of the bench. He braced himself and stood clinging to the paries of the boat. He needed a manus on the wall and one on the cap to hold on as the boat bounced.

And there it was.

Pressing hard against the tight textile of his boxers was a very expectant, very long, and very rigid bulge. Sydney and Chloe froze and their jaws dropped. Syndey recovered first.

"Did you make for your own fishing pole or is that hook ?"she growled sexily.

Ed blushed furiously and made his way to the door. He went through and they could see his back as he braced himself on the hinder deck.

Dale felt bad for the young man. He could commiserate somewhat with Ed though he wasn't quite in his conference length wise. It was obvious that Ed was very shy and uncomfortable about his… natural endowment. Maybe he could convince the ladies to go easy on him.

"I think the young man is a short shy about… that,"he said gently.

"Shit ! He should be shouting its attribute off the rooftops ! Fuck ! He's huge !"Sydney gasped.

Chloe looked troubled.

"That said, he does have a girlfriend."

"Are they dangerous ? Because I'd let him do affair to me with that which would give a Las Vegas whore a tenderness attack."

Dale froze in surprise. When he'd regained his equilibrium he leaned forward."They're very serious."

"It's not real."

Sydney looked at her daughter who was still staring at Ed's back."What ?"

"It can't be real. It can't be. It's a prosthetic !"Chloe's vocalisation was getting stronger and she was becoming irrationally angry for some reason.

"No, that's silly. Ed wouldn't do that."Dale said, then the off-the-wall nature of their conversation sandbagged him. What the inferno was he doing talking about this ?"Listen. Let's just agree to forget about all this and just relish our fishing tripper. Ok ?"

Sydney looked at him in disappointment but nodded.

Chloe nodded absently but she still hadn't taken her eyes off of Ed.

Dale gave her a disquieted flavor but there wasn't much else he could do. He looked out the window and tried to regain the heartsease he'd felt earlier.

-=-

Ed was reliving the humiliation of the football political party. The looks on the faces of the two adult female inside were exactly how his ‘ friends'had reacted to his being completely exposed. Shock and revulsion. He knew good will, Rachel, and the others said they had no effect but they loved him and cared about his flavour. They wouldn't do anything to wound him. Like say that he was some sort of deformed monster. He suddenly wished he'd gone shopping today.

-=-

Eventually the boat began to slow and the Professor started preparing their gear to do some fishing. He ran through the basics with them. Dale, Sydney and Chloe had experience with fishing so they caught on pretty well. There wasn't a lot of way at the back so Ed said he'd give it a try after the others had. Dale watched him with vexation but he smiled and stepped back.

There was a special belt harness they wore with a cup to rest the end of the fishing perch in.

Ed watched with interest as they dropped their come-on in the water. Then it got irksome. Ed saw this was a secret plan of solitaire. He drank a cold beer. Then another. Chloe and Sydney outpaced him on the beer drinking three to one. Twenty minute of arc later Ed was ready to foretell it when Dale's celestial pole took a sudden dip. Everyone took notice and the professor was right there with Dale offering him advice but keeping out of his way. Sydney and Chloe reeled in their hook and stowed their perch to give Dale the space he needed. After ten minutes of fighting everyone was reaching the conclusion that Dale had something big. The man was perspiring and carefully working the reel to work the fish to the surface without putting too much tune on the line of business. Ten more proceedings passed and Ed sucked back another cold brewage in his excitement. The ladies were cheering Dale whose immersion was completely on the rod and the personal line of credit. The rod straightened out and the fish shot out of the pee into the air fifty foundation behind the boat. It was a blue marlin and a decently sized one ! Ed was standing at the book binding of the boat and saw the sunshine glittering off the sides of the Pisces the Fishes as it twisted and shook in the air. He was in awe.

Ed didn't see the two drunken conspiring woman sneaking up behind him until he felt his shorts tugged down to his ankle. He spun around in shock and struck Chloe across the cheek with his flaccid tool as she was still holding his shorts down. She rocked back and fell on her ass as she stared at what had just clubbed her across the face.

"holy place roll in the hay ! Now THAT'S what I call a COCK !"Sydney called out drunkenly and licked her sass.

Chloe was speechless as she held her hand to her cheek. The sting was just beginning to pass into her drunken creative thinker. She stared at the meat hanging between Ed's leg and it just wouldn't register. It wasn't even hard but she couldn't accept what she was seeing. Again she became wild but she didn't know why.

The Professor and Dale managed to pull the Marlin onto the gravy holder as Ed pulled his shorts up. Dale finally noticed what was happening behind him."WHAT THE FUCK HAPPENED here ?"he bellowed seeing Ed's red look of shame and Chloe's equally red grimace of anger.

Captain Dan slid down the ravel with a grim spirit on his face. He could see Ed was really upset."I'm sorry Mr. Bruno Walter. I didn't know what they were up to."He looked over at Dale and pointed at the women."They pantsed him."

Dale's centre filled with passion. He looked over at the Professor."Toss it back in. Captain, take us back to land please. We're done."The headwaiter nodded to his first Paraguay tea and turned to climb back up the ravel. He stopped at the rump and turned back to Ed."Mr. Walters, please join me up top. The view is really nice."Ed nodded and followed him up.

The first-class honours degree mate stowed the perch and let the chieftain know they were proficient to go. He ushered the charwoman and Dale into the cabin then the boat began to pick up speed as it headed back to the island.

Sydney looked upset."We didn't get to fish for very long."

Dale knew she was drunk so he didn't bother arguing with her. There was no point.

Chloe was still rubbing her impudence and her raging smell hadn't gone away."He's a junkie,"she growled.

Dale just couldn't let that go. His temper popped. He slammed his palm down on the mesa surface and both char leaned away frightened.

"That Danton True Young man is a far better human being than you'll ever be. All you see is the outer shield and that's how you judge him. Pathetic !"

"Hey ! We were just having a footling fun ! He's an adult ! There's no motive to be a tool about this !"Sydney barked back.

"If a unknown man were to rip away your clothes in populace you would be fully justified in crying rape and that man would look criminal charges. If Ed chooses to do so, I'll fully support his filing rape commission against the two of you. It's the same action at law and it should have the same punishment."

"It was a prank,"she mumbled.

"Not to the victim it wasn't. Something your dim, rummy idea seems to be having trouble understanding. Now shut your sassing and recollect about how you are going to deal with being charged with rape."He turned his face to look out the window. He saw the worried expressions suddenly appear on their faces before he looked away.

He sighed. He knew Ed wouldn't single file tutelage against them. He just wanted them to realize their actions had backlash.

The rest period of the trip back was done in silence. Dale's peace of mind was gone. He was worried about Ed. The aspect of pity on his grimace as he pulled up his shorts was stuck in his mind. Dale needed to talk with Rachel. He had to tell her what happened.

He wished they'd gone shopping with the ladies today.

-=-

When they reached the loading dock a constabulary car was waiting with its illumination going. Two officers were standing on the pier. The prof got the ship tied up and let the law on. The ladies looked terrified.

"seed with us please,"one of the officeholder said and the two fair sex left the boat with the constabulary. They were placed in the spine of the prowl car and the officers got in and drove away. Dale stood on the pack of cards of the boat observance in shock. He looked up and saw Ed descending the ladder. When Ed reached the deck of cards Dale looked closely at him as they moved to the dock. He handed Ed his bag.

"Are you OK Ed ?"

The Pres Young man just nodded. police captain Dan slid down the ravel and looked over at Dale."The police are friends of mine. They're just taking the womanhood back to their hotel. Ed refused to press charges."He reached up to Dale from the deck of his ship and handed Dale a small memory crisp."I film the guests fishing so I can offer a time value add military service. The footage on this Saratoga chip is of you catching the Marlin. It also has the two women pantsing Ed. If you have any more trouble with those womanhood you have this as evidence."

"Thank you."

"On behalf of myself and my crew, I'm terribly sorry you had to look at with that. In all my twelvemonth of running these hitch I've never seen anything like that behavior."The captain shook his head and looked at Ed."takings care of yourself Ed. Remember what I said."

Ed smiled and nodded to the man.

Dale shook the man's hired hand as well as the Professor's then he and Ed made their way to the waiting van. The ride back to the hotel was much dull. When they arrived Ed said he was going to go take a shower.

Dale nodded and watched the man leave. He went to reception and asked if his wife and her Quaker had returned yet. A quickly balk of the computer indicated that his married woman had not yet returned to their room. He decided to wait in the pressure group to catch Rachel on her way by.

He must have nodded off as he jolted awake when Tristram shook his articulatio humeri. Rachel was standing behind her with a smile on her mouth. Both had shopping handbag in their hands.

"How went the fishing sleepyhead ?"Tristan teased.

"We had a problem. I need to utter with you Rachel."

"Where's Ed ?"she said sharply, her smile disappearing.

"He's in your way. Please, let's go talk in the couch where we have more privacy."Dale asked.

They found a restrained corner and Dale went through the events of their trip-up, leaving nothing out.

Rachel was obviously heroic to see Ed but she stayed to hear the details.

"I don't get it on what made Ed conceive he's some form of monster but that self-doubt is still alive and kicking. I don't think I'll ever forget that look of shame on his face."

"I want to scrape their eyes out !"Rachel growled."Thank you Dale for being there for him. Now I have to go see him. I think we'll have dinner in the way tonight. See you at breakfast tomorrow ? I'll let you know then if we'll be joining you on the catamaran trip."

The mates nodded at Rachel and she rushed off with her shopping bags clutched in her hands. She made it to their way and went inside."Edward ?"she called out.

"On the balcony,"he responded."Are you alone ?"

She wondered at that question."Yes, just me."

"Ok."

She dropped her bag on the desk and made her way out to see him. She saw the top of his head resting back against a sofa chair which had been rolled back to almost reach the methamphetamine doors. Hiding from being seen from below. She stepped through the door and came to an abrupt block. He was naked. The towel he'd wrapped around his waist after his shower was open and hanging down on either side of the chair.

Ed turned his forefront to calculate at her. He gave her a grin and seemed to be looking for something in her eyes.

"Dale told me what those two gripe did to you today."

Ed looked away and chuckled quietly."Bitches be crazy,"he mumbled.

"What ?"

"It's what police captain Dan told me on the boat. He let me ride up top with him on the way back. He told me not to care what they did or said because they were ‘ gripe'and ‘ bitches be dotty ’.

Not the distinguished model of soundness but there was pity in the substance. Rachel gave Captain Dan point for that.

"He was right. You shouldn't fear about their opinions or actions. They were wrong-"

"I'm not normal."Ed interrupted her.

Rachel stopped and looked at him."What ? Of course you're normal."

"No, this part of me is abnormal. freakish. They wouldn't react like they do otherwise."

Rachel flashed back to the Nox in her basement. The football game political party. Ed's abasement. The screams, curses and laughter. He was still carrying the wounds of that night.

She walked over to him and knelt future to his chair. She gently turned his Chin until he was looking at her. She saw the sadness in his optic. She wished it was potential to go back in time to the party and contain him from following that fell boy downstairs but that was just a fantasy. It happened. She was here now to help him leave that trauma in the past.

"You're big. That's just a fact. You're NOT freakishly big ! You're not stepping on your penis when you walk. THAT would be freakish."Ed gave her a belittled smile for that."There are many reasons which have nothing to do with you personally that might have hoi polloi to react in many dissimilar ways to seeing your sizing. Everyone has their own government issue when it comes to gender. Everyone has feelings of inadequacy in some expanse. There are multiple slipway people can react to that insecurity ; anger, fear, disgust, mocking laugh but all of these are fed from their own insecurity. Their issues. Not yours."

"Can we just stay in the room tonight ?"

She smiled."Yes. I can order way service if you like."

Ed's stomach growled loudly. He looked at her sheepishly."We missed tiffin today,"he murmured.

"A big dinner then an other bedtime,"she smiled.

He nodded so that's what they did.



Chapter 8

Ed carried the beach bag with their towels and lotion as he followed Rachel down the beach to the waiting sauceboat. They would be ferried out to the catamaran in this smaller boat. The catamaran was moored out in the bay and Ed was excited to get on display board. There was supposed to be a turgid exposed area at the front where the only open was a large net you could lie on to see the urine below. Rachel made sure they arrived early so they could try to get seats up by that net. It was first come first served. Dale and Tristram were right behind them.

The small boat got them out to the catamaran quickly and they climbed on display panel. The larger boat was beautiful ! They made their way forward and sure enough there was the give net. He grinned back at Rachel and her face lit up with a smile of her own. The ‘ net'turned out to be blanket straps so it was well-heeled to lie on. Rachel sat down next to Ed and Dale and Tristram on the diametric side. They could skid down and lie apartment on the net side of meat by side and there was still room at the far end of the net for two More node. Ed took the stance furthest out so he could feel the spray and the farting. Dale took the other end with the ladies in the middle.

More guests began to arrive and the boat filled quickly. There was a 30 passenger limit and to Ed it felt like double that but Rachel assured him there was probably only 20 other guests. He supposed he was just a piddling over tender.

Just before they got underway a Young couple came by and asked if the place on the net side by side to them was open. Ed nodded and they smiled and got settled. Ed caught a flash of gold out of the corner of his eye and saw the Whitney Young woman was tying her flaxen blond hair back and her ear was now exposed. She had gold anchor ring, lots of them, running up the outer edge of her capitulum. She noticed his stare and smiled.

"You like my earrings ?"she said with a lovely accent he couldn't place.

"Yes, I've never seen so many !"Ed said in awe.

Her smiling turned into a pleased grin at his wonder. Ed noticed the boyfriend giving him a hard feeling so he turned back to face Rachel. He heard the adult female say something in another linguistic process to the man. She sounded annoyed and the man's reaction sounded… mean ? It could have just been the language. Then secrecy.

It was to be a five minute sail with lunch and snorkeling by an island. They'd have beach time then the cruise back. Ed hoped he hadn't started an argument and ruined the day for them.

Ed picked up Rachel's hand and pressed it against his lips. She had been so marvellous with him the Night before. He felt so often better. Rachel squirmed as his lips travelled over her brass knuckles and she finally pulled her helping hand away and shook her finger's breadth at him. He saw her mammilla were pressing against the sloshed cups of her red bikini top. He looked away quickly as he felt a familiar twitching in his bathing causa. Tristan and Dale were smiling at them and Ed smiled back. The Thomas Young man wasn't smiling when Ed looked towards the bow. Ed sighed. cypher he could do about that.

Ed tugged his shirt off and pulled the suntan lotion out of the bag as he tucked the shirt inside. Rachel took the bottle from his manus and squirted some in her laurel wreath then handed it back to him. He began rubbing application on his chest and stomach while Rachel got his back. He'd already done his brass, arms, and legs back in the room. He had to wrestle his consistence to face the bow so Rachel could reach his back properly.

Ed tried not to look at the couple before him but there was an almost tangible quality to the man 's glare. Looking the early way he saw an appreciative gaze from the char who was smiling openly at him. She cried out in sudden painful sensation and a train of coarse sounding words flew from her back talk at her familiar as she rubbed her hip. He 'd kicked her ?

He looked to the man and he was firing some coarse Book back at the cleaning lady. He suddenly stood and made his way to the backbone of the boat pulling a fag from a pack.

Ed looked at the cleaning lady who was still rubbing her leg. `` Are you alright ? ``

She smiled and shrugged. `` Sergo can be a jealous prick sometimes. I am Katrina. Please, scream me Kat. ``

'' Hello Kat, I 'm Ed. This is Rachel, Tristram, and Dale, '' he said, making the intromission. Kat nodded to each of them with a smile. They traded hotel gens. Ed thought he recalled seeing hers when they were driving around.

'' I 'm not familiar with your accent mark. It 's very Nice, '' Ed said.

'' We 're Georgian."eyesight Ed's confusion she continued"A body politic near Turkey on the Black Sea. ``

'' Ah, we 're from the States, '' Ed replied.

Kat smiled. `` Yes, I recognized your accent. ``

Ed looked at her in surprise. `` I have an accent ? ``

Kat began to laugh and the others smiled at his innocence.

'' I think you are a very sweet man, Ed from the United States, but I had better go discover Sergo. I can provide our bags here ? ``

Ed nodded to her and she made her way to the back. He slid down until he was fully reclining on the mesh. It was heavenly. Rachel ran her fingerbreadth through his hair and he purred with contentment.

He must hold fallen asleep as he suddenly jerked awake to the auditory sensation of shouting. Sergo and Kat were flaring at each other across the netting. Kat was sitting up on the center beam with her animal foot on the control surface near Ed 's berm. Sergo was sitting up on the hull across from her. Both were shouting and gesturing at him. Ed got annoyed.

'' Hey ! People are trying to decompress here. go along it down ! ``

Sergo gave him a condescending look and rattled off something directed at him.

Ed just looked at him tiredly. `` Was that meant to knock over or insult me ? Or just make you feel brave ? ``

The look in Sergo 's eyes went common cold and dangerous. Ed just held his gaze calmly. Eventually Sergo made an odd sucking noise with his teeth, picked up his bag and walked to the back of the sauceboat. Kat looked at Ed nervously. `` You should n't take questioned his bravery. ``

Ed looked at Kat. `` I was n't the one hiding behind a speech we did n't share. ``

With a final unquiet look Kat grabbed her bag and went to find her boyfriend.

'' American ! Making protagonist wherever we go ! '' Dale teased and Ed smiled at him. He relaxed back against the interlock and was soon lulled back to sleep by the waves.

Ed woke once more as the boat anchored near a minuscule reef. It was snorkeling fourth dimension ! Dale and Rachel decided to sit this one out but Ed and Tristan got their equipment. She got a life vest but they didn't have one large enough to fit around Ed's body. He told them he'd come back to the ship when he got tired. They made their way to the steps leading down to the water and got in.

'' How 's your swimming ? '' Tristram asked.

'' I 'm an excellent swimmer in a pool but again, this is another first for me. ``

'' It 's a lot rougher in the sea, '' she said with a grin.

They got their masks and schnorkel in seat and followed the other swimmer. Sergo and Kat could be seen ahead of them. Sergo also didn't have a life history waistcoat but he certainly would throw fit one. Glancing at each former they veered a fiddling to the position so they did n't get too close to the couple.

Ed was mesmerized by the beauty of the life under the sea. The reef was small but there was so many species of fish and other creatures living on it. It really seemed like an island under the water.

Tristram looked like she was enjoying herself as well. She kept pointing things out to Ed and making squeaking noises in her snorkel. Ed tried his best not to express mirth as that flooded his mask.

They followed each former around the Rand for thirty bit and Ed was starting to get really sap. He was n't exactly a spots with so little body fat.

Suddenly he heard choking and screaming. He lifted his headway as did Tristan and they spotted Kat splashing on the airfoil. No sign of Sergo. Ed cast a flying face at Tristram then plunk beneath the control surface. He saw the man floating just above the Reef. Ed quickly swam to him and dragged him up to the surface. Ed checked and the man was n't breathing.

He was becoming exhausted but he immediately began pulling Sergo to the gravy holder as that was the exclusively strong surface around. He kicked and pulled for all he was worth and got to the sauceboat 's steps quickly. Hands lifted the unconscious man upwards and Ed pulled off his flippers and climbed up after them.

No one seemed to be doing anything so Ed 's training kicked in. He concentrated unvoiced and the step clicked into place. He worked on Sergo as the other guests arrived and a cheer went up as the drowned man began to cough and pant. Kat and Tristan finally managed to get back on the sauceboat and Kat dropped to her knees next to the coughing man. She was crying and saying something that Ed couldn't understand.

He flopped onto his book binding and gasped for air as his spent muscles twitched and shook. Rachel knelt next to him and put his head on her lenient wooden leg. He smiled up at her."Hello pretty lady."

"I didn't know you were a lifesaver too."

"Didn't I mention I got certified when I had that job working at the community pool ?"he said weakly.

"Are you ok ?"she asked with business organization in her voice.

"I'm just exhausted… and hungry !"

"You're always athirst ! Luckily they are about to serve lunch."Rachel pointed to the back.

"Ah ! You're an Angel !"he gasped and sat up.

Sergo was sitting up as well and was looking at Ed with a sour reflexion. Kat was speaking quietly and rapidly to him in their language. Finally Sergo raised his mitt to indicate he'd heard enough. He looked at Ed again.

"Thank you,"was all he said and even that hadn't do across as very sincere. Kat looked furious again.

‘ You're welcome,"was Ed's reply. He had no more time or energy for the man. He didn't postponement around for more words as there was solid food waiting for him.

The stave were delighted he'd been there to save their client and piled food onto two plate for Ed. They cleared a table for four and Ed's group got to sit together and savor the delicious crybaby, fish, Timothy Miles Bindon Rice, salads, and veg. There was a huge afters smorgasbord, mostly cookies.

Ed powered through his lunch and ate a few biscuit for dessert. Finally he pushed back and patted his corporation to show its little jut. He was stuffed ! He yawned hugely.

"Oh ! Sorry about that,"he said to his friends.

"I think someone needs a snooze."Rachel said.

"fountainhead I am a little bit tired,"Dale admitted with a full-strength aspect. Tristan swatted his arm and Dale chuckled. The group made their way back out to the front of the boat.

Kat and Sergo were back in their smudge.

"If you do not mind we would like to part this area with you."Kat asked.

"Not at all. We were just going to have a nap,"Ed said.

"We will be quiet."Kat replied picking up Ed's hint. He smiled and settled himself down.

"Hang on Ed. You have to reapply your application after swimming,"Rachel said holding out the bottle. He sighed and took it from her. It took ten minutes to cover all of his exposed pelt and that was with Rachel's assistance. His eyelids were drooping when he was done. Using his rolled up towel as a pillow he laid down on his tum and was out.

-=-

When he woke once he felt shadows across his eubstance and the boat was moving once more. He was still on his abdomen and felt someone soft pressed against his left arm, sharing his warmth. Opening his centre he was looking through Rachel's succulent red hair. Then he realized he felt individual soft pressed against his right arm. He turned his heading and saw flaxen blonde hair and many, many earrings. Lifting his head he saw the angry eyes of Sergo staring at him from his seated attitude on the hull. Ed raised an eyebrow in question but Sergo just stood up and walked away carrying his bag.

"Kat."

She stretched out against him, rubbing down the length of his trunk. She pulled her top dog back and blinked."Oh ! Ed ! I am sorry. I was just trying to stay on warmly and you are very warm."

"That's OK. Uh, I think Sergo hates me again. He just left if you want to find him."

"No. I am done with him. I have told him that as well. He showed me what form of man he is when you saved his animation. I will not waste my living on a man like that. When we get back to Georgia I am moving back in with my mother."

"If you don't mind me saying it I'm glad to see that. I know you can do better than him,"Ed sighed.

He felt movement on his go out side so he turned his mind and looked into beautiful blue eyes. He leaned over and kissed her tenderly making Rachel purr. Her eyes widened when Kat sat up leaning on Ed's back to becalm herself. The duck soup was very much cooler and sitting on top of the mesh topology meant the air got them from below as well.

Ed looked over Rachel and saw Tristan cuddled up against Dale. They looked so sweet together Ed smiled at them and Rachel looked to see what he was smiling at. She also thought they made a cute yoke. Ed caught question in the turning point of his eye and saw they were re-entering the bay they'd left from.

"We're back,"he said to Rachel. She sat up and tapped Tristin's foot. The woman blinked her eyes open and stretched against her husband who was awoken by that delightful feeling.

They got their stuff ready. While Ed was over by Dale the sr. man leaned in beside his ear."What happened to Kat's boyfriend ?"he whispered.

"She dumped him. She didn't like the man she saw when he came back."

"That's going to make for an awkward remaining few days."Dale said and Ed's middle widened.

"I hadn't thought of that."

"The girl seems hopeful and yobo. She'll kingdom on her animal foot,"Dale suggested.

Ed nodded but felt somehow responsible.

The small sauceboat began ferrying the passengers back to shore. Kat gave Ed a pixilated hug and a kiss on the cheek before she joined Sergo on the small craft. Ed got one more spotlight from Sergo before the gravy boat left.

"Should I have let him overwhelm ?"Ed asked no one in particular and Dale chuckled.

Soon it was their turn. They were picked up by their shuttle and went back to the hotel. After getting cleaned up they met for dinner in the main dining hall.

Ed immediately ordered a Piña Colada and was delighted to hear they served them on the beach as well. Dale had booked a small cabana for the following day so they could enjoy the beach in panache. Ed wasn't certain how he felt about that. He might desire to lie on his towel in the George Sand. After all this was another first.

dinner party arrived and they talked and ate until the restaurant began to exclude down. As they had all had a long nap they moved over to the bar and continued to talk. Now drinks were involved and Ed was discovering which drinks he really liked. The relaxation were discovering what a igniter weight Ed was when it came to drinking. It got away from him and he became very drunkard. At 1AM Rachel announced it was clip to learn Ed to bed. They were all feeling a little felicitous but Ed was very mellow. She put his arm over her shoulder and guided him out. Tristan had to take his other side, Dale getting the doors.

Ed began to birr from the softness pressing on both side of his trunk and something woke up. Tristram noticed first as she was looking down to catch their step on the stairs.

"How is that potential with all the hard drink in his system ?"she commented to Dale.

"Ah, never underestimate the power of the young, male person libido !"he quipped and Rachel snorted.

Dale and Tristan left them at the door and Rachel got Ed inside and onto the bed. He tugged her on top of himself and ran his bridge player down her back. His osculate wasn't that skilled but he made up for that in love. Soon Rachel had her dress off and was sliding his hard cock into her mouth. She was already wet but she wanted Ed good and slippery in case he was a niggling too fast-growing. She climbed on top of him and slowly impaled herself on his midst shaft.

"Ooooh Rachel… you feeeeel sooooo gooooood. You're sooooo sexy !"

She grinned down at his euphoric expression. She felt so sexy and it felt pretty incredible for her too. She wasn't getting the depth she got when he was driving down into her from above with her legs held back but this was pretty damn skilful too.

She began to rise up and overleap down until she got into a steady pattern. She felt the build-up Begin as Muriel Spark shot through her.

Ed's need was a runaway geartrain. He couldn't take the slow stride Rachel was setting. He reached up and took her turgid bosom in his manpower. He squeezed them and tugged on her nipples.

"shtup ! OH FUCK EDWARD !"she wailed as lightning slam between her misuse mamilla and her puss. He was being so rough but she was so blooming turned on ! She gave in to the air pressure on her nipples and lay across his body. His workforce were in her hair future and he was kissing her, hard. Ed's pelvic arch began to thrust up on their own, driving his thick cock deep into her. He released her hair and his hands moved to her ass. He squeezed the flesh there, feeling its delicious firmness, and his throbbing became more insistent.

"AAAHHH ! OH GOD ! take ME, Edward VII ! pick out ME !"she yelled as she was swept up in his dire pauperism.

Ed moved one hand up to squeeze one of Rachel's incredible tits as his other hand slipped down between her ass impertinence. He rubbed the spiritualist soma between her snatch and her ass and she began to labor herself against his pelvis, moaning constantly.

When he sucked her nipples into his mouth and gently scraped his teeth across the sensitive ring of color Rachel went into convulsions. Ed resumed his pounding up into her pussy as he was so very close. It only took a dozen or so thrusts for him to reach his discharge. Rachel was clinging to him making incoherent audio as her body trembled. He took her head between his big manpower and kissed her backtalk tenderly. She moaned once more and he felt her pussy squeezing down hard on his spent cock.

Ed sagged to the bed and Rachel lay stretched out over his body. She had no vitality to proceed and neither did he. So that's how they fell asleep.

-=-

Breakfast the next dawning found four people with different levels of holdover. Dale was the best off and only had to trammel his dawn run to three statute mile.

Next came Tristram who seemed to deliver splendid rebound capabilities. She'd taken her annoyance killer and had drunk a huge bottle of piddle before going to bed the dark before.

For Rachel it wasn't so much the beverage as the enthusiastic sex afterwards. She was aching badly though just thinking about the old eventide's sex sent gentle waves of bliss through her dead body. As long as she didn't move. Or put too much press on her ass. Or take the air too fast. Or impact her mammilla. She had to get home again so the other ladies in Ed's life sentence could share in this and give her a little break. She allowed herself another trip down Recent memory lane and sighed. Tristram watched her with assorted feelings.

Ed. Ed was suffering. He'd forgotten to drink weewee while he was drinking booze and he was majorly dehydrated. His top dog was pounding and the thought of food wasn't sitting well with him. He had a large feeding bottle of cold water in social movement of him which he was sipping at constantly. Rachel promised him he would feel better by lunchtime. He'd taken painkillers in the room before they marched over to the restaurant. uncollectible, he saw she was in pain this morning and he had no memory board of what they'd done. His recollection ended sometime in the bar the previous night. He'd apologized a number of times but she told him she didn't regret a second of it and he should let it go. He still felt bad… in that way too.

"It's a very good thing we didn't plan anything up-and-coming for today. The beach cabana is ready and waiting. It's number 3,"Dale said.

The flavour of the nutrient in the eatery was getting to Ed."If you don't head I'm going to channelize over to the cabana now."

"Don't forget to put your lotion on,"Rachel reminded him.

He nodded then winced. He got up gingerly and made his way out of the restaurant.

"Do you think he'll ever drink again ?"Dale grinned.

"Oh yes ! He said as much this morning. He will be smarter about it next clock time though. His words,"Rachel smiled.

That drew a chuckle from the couple.

"What about you ? You seem a trivial shaky this morning,"Dale asked obliviously.

Rachel smiled gently."Remember his excitement last night ? We got a little carried away. Actually More than a lilliputian. Having him all to myself has proven to be more than I can handle."She looked over at two red faces."Oh my god ! Too much information ! I can't believe I just said that ! Please forgive me ! I've just become so comfortable in your caller. It already feels like you're part of my circle of friends."

Dale and Tristram were secretly delighted that Rachel felt that way but she was right about too much information. Dale was trying to keep the image of Ed and Rachel having sex out of his mind. Tristan was trying to deny the image of Ed making love to her.

They had their breakfast though conversation was rather subdued then went out to the cabana. They found Ed passed out on a couch chair on his stomach. He'd tried to put lotion on his rear but fell asleep trying. Rachel pleaded for Tristan to do it as she was still feeling too sore to lean over Ed's magnanimous body.

Tristram rubbed the application on as efficiently as she could and did her best to call back of things early than how strong he felt under her hands. Ed woke up and thanked her for finishing the job. She barely resisted the urge to give his ass a spank when she finished. She looked over at Dale who was wearing a grin on his look as he saw his wife's flustered grammatical construction. Amused was he ? Tristan gave Ed's ass a slap after all."All done,"she said and went to lie down on her own waiting area chair avoiding everyone's shocked looks.

Ed's ass cheek was smarting from the backbreaking slap and Tristan's script was sore for quite some clock time though she ignored it. He looked over at Rachel who just raised her eyebrows. The four did their best to unbend after that.

The hold off staff were diligent in ensuring the Edgar Guest were offered drinks and snack at fairish intervals and just before tiffin Ed graduated from piss to pineapple juice.

When tiffin rolled around he was ravenous and practically dragged the group over to the beach bar. He ordered a burger and kid. He insisted to Tristan that she decree her own child this time and she giggled. All was unspoilt again.

They were discussing Ed's drinking strategy for the political party cruise the followers day when two police policeman walked into the Beach Bar and were directed over to their table. Dale recognized them as the two booster of maitre d'hotel Dan.

"Hello. I'm looking for an Edward Walter,"one of the policeman said.

"That's me,"Ed said.

"I'm Constable Broome and this is John Constable Thomas Reid. Do you acknowledge a Sergo Zoidze ?"

"I met a Sergo on a catamaran cruise yesterday but I never got his last name."

"We understand there was an argument on the trip between you, young woman Katrina Melua, and Mr. Sergo Zoidze."Broome said.

"They were arguing and I asked them to hold back it down and they walked away. Not much of an arguing really,"Ed said reasonably.

"Did the witnesses also mention Edward saved Sergo's life ?"Rachel said exasperated. The officers looked at each other.

"No, that was not mentioned. What happened,"Constable Reid asked Ed.

"Tristram and I were snorkeling and we heard Kat, I mean Katrina cry for assistance. I dove under and pulled Sergo up. He wasn't breathing. I pulled him to the catamaran and performed CPR on him until he started breathing on his own. I'm surprised you didn't find any looker because it felt like everyone was watching,"Ed explained.

Once More the constable shared a tone."One hold out interrogative sentence. Where were you between the hours of 10PM and midnight net night."

"We were all in the bar last nighttime from ten until one in the morning. You can ask victor the mixologist and the waitresses who worked hold out night,"Dale said and frowned."What's this about ?"

"Mr. Zoidze died endure Night. His body was found on the sway at the base of a small cliff a few kilometers east of here. The fall killed him but it looked like he was in a fight. young lady Melua is also in the hospital. She's unconscious and has been badly beaten. She was found on the side of the road not far from where Mr. Zoidze's body was found. They were likely together when the fire occurred."

"Katrina broke up with Sergo on the boat trip. She was going to move back in with her female parent when they flew home. He wasn't very nice to her. He kicked her."Ed said with a scowl.

Eyebrows went up and Thomas More notes were taken."So Mr. Zoidze was abusive to missy Melua ?"

"Well… we witnessed one instance of this behavior."Dale asserted.

"Can we go see her ?"Ed asked.

"She's unconscious so today is probably not a good day to do this. We still have to consume her statement so it would be better if you gave her a match of days."constable Broome indicated."Thank you very much for your cooperation."With nods and smiles the Constables left and headed in the focal point of the bar. No question looking for the staff who could corroborate their alibi.

The table was quiet for a hour.

"I should accept let him drown."

Dale looked sharply at Ed who wasn't angry as he expected him to be with such a financial statement but instead he looked deeply distraught.

"Son, there was no way you could have known this would happen. You can't see into the idea of others and know their intent. Sergo was obviously a troubled man. She's gratuitous of him now at least."

"At what cost ?"Ed asked.

More silence. Finally Rachel broke it with a trace."How about we go visit her on Friday ? That gives her some prison term to heal and the police force time to get her story."

Ed's funk lightened considerably as he looked over at Rachel. He nodded. The rest did as well. They finished up their lunch and went back to the cabana.

After relaxing for a bit Ed got fidgety so he decided to go for a walking along the beach. This turned into a jog and lasted for more than an hour. When he finally got back Rachel looked relieved.

"You were gone for quite some time. I was getting worried,"she said.

"Sorry about that. I just needed to sting off some energy. That story about Sergo and Kat really upset me,"he explained.

"Are you feeling effective now ?"Rachel asked.

"Much better. Thanks ! I'm still looking forward to visiting the hospital on Friday."

Rachel smiled at him. He ran down the beach and into the piss to cool off off. He swam around and saw Tristan was in the water too. He swam over to her.

"The water is beautiful !"he called out and she started from the daze she had been in. She turned to see it was Ed.

"Yes, it's very refreshing !"

"I've never been on a party boat before. What's it like ?"he asked, thinking about their scheduled bodily function the next day.

"I don't know. I've never been on one either but it looked fun in the booklet,"she replied.

Ed grinned and bounced to lift over an entering wave. The sea really was more concern on this end of the island. He couldn't imagine spending time on the still side of the island.

They bobbed in the waves for a little while foresighted then made their way back up to the cabana. After he dried himself off Rachel directed him to sit at the end of her chair and she put application on his vertebral column again.

Ed found himself zoning out again. The fresh air, the cushy breeze, the sun and heat, and Rachel's gentle touch combined to tranquillise him into a becalm state of Zen. She had to give him a button to get him to move over to his own chair before he flaked out.

When he woke up the others were chatting quietly. Rachel noticed him blinking eternal rest from his eyes.

"Hey there sleepy head !"she smiled.

"This is the most slack spot in the earthly concern,"he sighed getting chuckle from the others.

"It's almost dinner time. We were thinking of taking a taxi to a local restaurant for some fresh lobster."Dale said.

"audio in effect !"Ed replied.

They went back to their rooms and got dressed up nice. Dale called them to indicate they had arriere pensee. Rachel was wearing her sexy Au cocktail frock once more and Ed's attention was naturally drawn to her beauty. The cerebration of making love to Ed in her current State wasn't so appealing. She actually considered changing outfits to tone down his excitement.

"You know I can see that flavour of fear in your eye and I'm not so dense that I can't tell you're in pain,"Ed said quietly.

Rachel froze.

"I would never force myself on you and I don't have to accept sex every night. I do like to treasure your beauty by looking though, if you don't head,"he said quietly.

She felt ashamed. She'd been treating him like a savage beast instead of a fair man.

"I'm sorry Edward. Of course I don't brain you looking. I love you looking. I just can't hold open up with your drive,"she apologized.

"I guess I haven't been very gentle. I'm truly sorry about that. It's hard to hold myself around you and the booze certainly doesn't help."

She moved close and gave him a supply ship kiss.

"I love you, beautiful lady"he said when she pulled back and shiver went through her body.

"I love you too big man !"she replied huskily. He pressed his brim to her forehead.

They made their way down to the third house and waited only a few minute of arc for Tristan and Dale to fall in them. The taxi ride to the restaurant was very nice as they got to see the nearby hotels lit up. They drove down a minor road to stop in front end of a lovely eating place on a small bay. They were shown to a table overlooking the water and spent the showtime few minutes just absorbing the ambiance. It was a magical night as the stars were out and the lack of illume pollution allowed them to see them so much better than at home.

The lobster was yet another unique experience for Ed and the others had to show him the right method acting for extracting the meat. Occasionally, the over use of military force caused lobster meat to become airborne and giggles issued from the ladies.

"This meal involves too much employment !"Ed finally announced.

"But it's sound ?"Dale asked with a grin.

"Oh yes, the food for thought is delicious but if it weren't for this napkin I think I'd be wearing More of my meal than I'm eating,"he said with a wry grin.

Afterwards he checked and he'd spared his clothes from a butter bath. He sighed until he saw the chunk of core stuck to his human knee. He had no theme how it rolled down there.

"Damn ! These are my final clean pants,"he grumbled.

"We'll send them out for cleaning tonight. You'll have them back for tomorrow night when we get back from the party cruise."Rachel insisted and Ed smiled at her in thanks.

They took a taxi back to the hotel and made plans to meet for breakfast the adopt morning.

When they got to the room Rachel found the laundry bag and asked Ed to put all the clothes he wanted washed into it. Ed knew he was almost out of swim luggage compartment so he added those to the bag. Tomorrow morning he'd put on the ones he'd left on the balcony to dry.

They ordered some boozing and once they arrived they sat on the balcony looking up at the mavin. The drink went to Ed's head and he decided to go to bed. He gave Rachel a kiss as she wanted to stay out just a little thirster as she was enjoying her wine.

She sighed with happiness. While she wasn't looking forward to going back to the cold at the end of their stumble she wasn't dreading going home to an vacate home or being alone any prospicient. It was a miracle she never failed to thank the stars above every chance she got. She did her piddling ritual of thanks then got up to go inside. She noticed a yoke of shorts on the floor of the balcony. She picked them up and saw how sandy they were. boy ! She carried them inside.

Ed was already snoring softly so she went to the room's door and confirmed the laundry bag was still there. She tucked the marked-up pair of trunks into the bag then went to bed. Snuggling in next to the big man she was able to settle asleep in less than a minute.

-=-

Ed was becoming very queer. He'd had his shower and padded out to the balcony wrapped in only his towel to get his trunks but they weren't there. He looked over the edge of the balcony at the bushes below thinking maybe the idle words blew them off the balcony. Maybe ? Nothing.

He went back inside and checked the chest of drawers drawers once more. No shorts. No bathing suits… well, one but he wasn't wearing that one. He went into the lavatory and checked the draw behind the door but no lawsuit. He heard movement in the sleeping room. Ah ! Good, Rachel was up. He went out to ask her.

"Are you done with the bathroom ?"she asked him.

"Yes, it's all yours. Did you see a pair of swim trunk on the balcony last night ? I can't find them."

She thought for a second."Oh ! Yes, I picked them up off the story. They were filthy so into the laundry bag they went."

Ed's typeface dropped.

"What- what's ill-timed ?"Rachel said seeing his expression.

"Those were my last trunks."

Rachel pulled open his drawer and saw the jammers right on top."What do you mean ? You have these- ohhhh."

"I'm not wearing those on a party gravy boat with a clump of strangers !"he said with an get to tone.

Rachel looked at him and saw the foiling on his face."I'm sorry Edward. The short on the balcony were very contaminating. I had no idea you planned on wearing them."She thought for a moment."You could put these on and envelop your towel around your waistline like a kilt. That could work."

"What do I do when I want to go in the water ?"he asked.

"Take off the towel and get in the water. No one will see you underwater. Put the towel back on when you get back on the boat."

He didn't look convinced but there really was no other choice. He was out of swimsuits.

Grumbling he put on the jammers and Rachel watched in fascination. She hadn't seen him do this before and hadn't realized how lots elbow grease it took to tuck himself down one of the legs. She was a slight flushed when he finished.

"I'mmm- I'm going to go take my shower now,"she mumbled.

Ed pulled on his disastrous singlet and grabbed his shades. He was gear up. He sat down to wait. The towel idea wasn't too bad.

When Rachel was prepare they went down for breakfast and met Dale and Tristram who already had a table.

"What's with the towel ? You've already been in the urine ?"Dale asked.

Ed scowled and took his tail end. Rachel answered.

"I put the swimsuit Edward VIII was planning on wearing in the washing last dark. All he has left is a very aphrodisiac but blind drunk jammer style swimsuit."

"What's a ‘ jammer elan'suit ?"Dale asked. Tristan rolled her eyes.

"Do you recall the short pro cyclists wear ? That, minus the padding. peel tight stretchy black fabric."Rachel smiled, ignoring Ed's gloomy look."He looks unbelievable in them but I understand his hesitance to wear off them in front of strangers."

"I'd loan you a pair of my tree trunk but they'd be tighter than what you have now and wouldn't stretch."Dale offered. Ed smiled weakly and shake up his head.

They ate their breakfast and wandered out to the lobby to look for the shuttle bus. When it finally arrived they heard it coming up the lane. The laugh and singing coming from the bus brought a smile to their faces. It looked like they had a fun bunch of people to party with !

They had to squeeze on as the bus wasn't very large and already had a group of fifteen from a hotel up the street. The group was comprised of various families from Liverpool, England. There was a good mix of adults from their mid-twenties to their fifties. They made space and the bus got on its way.

Once more the drive to the sour grass was short and they all piled out. Ed noted that several of the members of the group adopted his method for carrying their towels so he felt a short better about wearing his.

The ship was fairly great and had multiple spirit level. They made their way on board and found a good place to sit, not too close to the speakers.

The crowd were already handing out the rum punch and Ed decided to waitress for a bit as did the eternal sleep in his group.

Another group arrived bringing the total up to probably thirty five people, not counting the staff. The music started and the MC began to make announcements about the free spirits, the action, the dislodge booze, lunch, the absolve booze, and Ed got the hint. The political party boat was all about imbibing and having a ripe sentence ! Woo ! There would be two snorkeling full stop, the second one being the bay where they would anchor the ship. They'd service lunch at that metre and there would be clock time for sunbathing, swim and snorkeling. Some client would be forced to walk the plank and some would swing from a roach. And everyone was expected to drink.

Once they were underway, the music started and hoi polloi were up dancing. Ed accepted a cup of the rum punch and found it to be delicious ! Tristan said she would keep pace with him and the bet was on. Rachel and Dale opted to hold a more tranquilize tread with their drinking.

Soon Ed found himself in a conga line with Tristan rightfulness behind him. Rachel and Dale were enjoying seeing their partners make chump of themselves and they were enjoying the clout as well.

The ship arrived at the first snorkeling destination and Ed and Tristan managed to convert Rachel and Dale to join them. The reef was close to the ship so the swimming involved wouldn't need too a lot effort. Ed's middle went wide when he saw Rachel's amazing tits squeezed into a life story vest. He became repose and spooky as he'd have to take out his towel and Rachel's torso had started something down below. The crew was gimcrack and boisterous so no one really seemed to acknowledge when he dropped the towel onto the bench. He kept his flippers in front of himself as he followed Rachel to the stairs down to the water.

Ed swam on his back facing Rachel holding her bridge player so he could draw in her gently out to the reef. They kissed before donning their masque and snorkel drawing some attention from nearby swimmers. Ed didn't have a undershirt as once again nothing fit so he had to use more energy to persist on the Earth's surface than Rachel did but they remained side by face as they swam around the reef. Ed tugged Rachel back to the ship when they were done and they smiled at each other the entire way. It was so skillful spending this metre together. Ed felt completely at ease around Rachel.

He helped her back onto the ship and climbed up himself. They went back to the bench and grabbed their towels to dry off. Ed dried his fuzz and listen some gasps and giggles. He lifted the towel and saw a grouping of five Young fair sex from Liverpool standing huddled together on the deck of cards looking at his swim trunks. While he wanted to immediately obscure himself he saw Rachel watching him. He remembered her words that the reactions of others was their own insecurities being expressed.

Ed wouldn't countenance his own insecurities to run his life. He forced himself to return to drying himself without hurrying or missing any areas. When he was done and not a indorsement earlier he wrapped the towel around his waist once more and learn some easy suspiration. His eyes went to the women once more and he saw more than one smiling at him. He nodded and turned to face Rachel and she had a grinning as well.

"I'm very proud of you Edward for controlling your fears and maintaining your lordliness while being stared at. They were being appreciative if a petty blatant about it. You did very well,"she said and Ed felt a wave of warmth spread through his torso at her praise.

15 second later Tristan and Dale returned. They were waterlogged but grinning from ear to ear. As they dried off they talked about the sea lifespan they'd spotted and the four compared notes.

Ed went to get more rum punch for all of them. It was so honorable ! Once everyone was back on the ship it lifted mainstay and headed to the next snorkeling stain. The drinks came around again and Ed smiled at Tristram as he took a cup from the tray. She grinned at him in challenge and took two. Ed snagged a second before the man could move away. Tristram tossed one back gulping the low temperature, mellisonant potable down in a few swallows. She eyed Ed and he could only travel along her example.

"These aren't as strong as the ones we had at the director's Rum poke Party,"Ed noted as he sipped at the second one.

More dancing began and the MC said they'd be playing games shortly. sexy games !

Ed looked at Rachel nervously but she raised an eyebrow at him and he nodded as he took a trench breathing space. Maybe he could remain in the desktop. He snagged another rum clout as the waiter passed him and Tristan squeaked in fake outrage. She chased after the server to get one for herself.

The MC began describing the first game. The staff were going to select three female ‘ volunteers'who would each be given a balloon. When the MC yelled ‘ Start !'they would suffer to inflate the balloon and tie it closed. Then these women would have to find out a male ‘ voluntary ’, who also had to be a unknown, to return to the middle of the deck with them to help them pop the balloon between the woman's backside and the man's jetty. Just an unacquainted balloon popping party biz which just so bump to look like twosome having sex. plentitude to get obstruct about.

The mathematical group was hooting and laughing loudly which made the MC and the staff very felicitous. They liked a rowdy bunch. The bartender's assistant selected three willing women from different topographic point on the deck and handed out the balloons. Ed recognised one of the cleaning woman as one of the five that had been smiling at him sooner. Tall with a hard toned organic structure, obviously fake titmouse stretching out her ornate bikini top and a bit of tattoos. Pink and yellow hair tied back in two pigtails. The second base was a little shorter with long black tomentum and a nice body. The tierce was shorter still with brunette hairsbreadth tied back in a single crib ass. She was the plumpest of the three. She was having worry stopping her hinder laughter. She'd had a lot of rum punch. The beginning two dame immediately started stretching the balloons to get them ready for inflating.

The MC got the attention of all three women and began a tally down. The laughing womanhood finally began stretching her balloon. At start they began blowing into the balloons and discovered that it wasn't so easily. The three struggled to get them inflated and the balloons turned out to be long arch bod as blanket as a loaf of sandwich kale and twice as long. The laugher wasn't making much progress on inflating the balloon as it kept getting away from her. The other two finally got theirs to an puffiness they were happy with and quickly tied them off. The two women shot away in opposite directions from each other. The tattooed woman made a bee seam for Ed, holding his eye the total way. He froze as she reached out and took his deal.

"Lose the towel. You can't pop a balloon with it on,"she said quickly. Ed tugged the towel loose and stepped out of it as he followed the fair sex out into the middle of the level. The brunette finally had her balloon tied and looked up at Ed as he stepped out onto the deck. She glanced down and spun off into the crowd looking for a volunteer of her own.

The Corvus corax haired woman was back dragging a untried fit looking man by the hand. She grinned at the tattooed woman and immediately put the balloon between her ass and her partner. He immediately began pounding away, trying to pop the balloon. Ed saw the top of the balloon between their soundbox was just taking up the superfluous pressure as their body slammed together. The crowd was going nuts.

Ed's cooperator tried to emulate the Corvus corax haired fair sex's try to pop the balloon. She lodged it deep between her ass cheeks and pulled Ed against her as she pushed back. She looked back at him sexily as she rammed herself back. Ed could see the balloon wasn't going to pop this way so he wrapped his arms around the fair sex's body, one arm resting under her titty the other running down her body, his manus resting on her thigh. He lifted and pulled her tight against him, her understructure lifting from the footing. He drove his hips forward with a powerful thrust and the balloon went off with a cheap bang between them.

Ed's partner squeaked loudly as she clung to his arms and rested her head back on his berm. Her jaw was open, her eyes closed, and she was shaking in reaction. As the bulk of the balloon had been trapped between their organic structure the office that popped had been in a very cozy spot and she was coming down from the surprisingly tingly sting.

He tilted forward slowly to lower her to her foot. Ed tried to move his sleeve but she clung to him as she floated down from the thrill.

The untested man was still driving his breakwater into the other woman's balloon oblivious of the plot being over.

The plump brunette never returned as she was busy necking with the young man she'd selected.

Ed pulled his arms back as the MC came to congratulate them for the most premature popping of a balloon ever. Ed smiled at the cleaning woman who was smiling broadly at him.

"I'm Tracy !"she shouted over the cheering.

"Ed !"he replied.

The MC handed them jersey. In great text hers said ‘ HE POPPED MY cherry tree ON A political party BOAT'with the company logo under this. In low text edition below the parole ‘ CHERRY'were the words ‘ colored balloon ’. Similarly his t-shirt had the manful counterpart message, ‘ I POPPED HER CHERRY ON A PARTY sauceboat ’, again using the same little text to tame the message.

"Alright succeeder, put on your t-shirts for picture show time,"the man directed.

Ed pulled off his mingy singlet and felt bridge player touching his breast. Once the shirt cleared his head he saw it was Tracy pawing his heftiness, her optic wide with joy."Bloody hellhole, you're built big all over !"

Ed smiled at her timidly then pulled on the new shirt. As expected he stretched it to last which just seemed to construct Tracy more excited. She pulled on her shirt then reached under and pulled out her bikini top leaving her raw under the shirt. With the meanness Ed could see… a lot.

"Excellent timing my winner because you both look so hot we're here to chill you down !"the MC bellowed and two of the staff poured jug of frigidness water over their chests.

The white t-shirts immediately became translucent. More embarrassing for her but she didn't seem to beware as she clung to Ed's arm while her booster all took pictures of the two of them.

Ed looked over at Rachel and she was smiling at him. He took strong suit from that and she noticed. She mouthed ‘ I love you'and he did as well.

Then he felt a soft ass pressing back against his groin and turned back to see Tracy posing suggestively for her acquaintance who were shooting film in a frenzy as they laughed hysterically. More photographic camera pointed in their direction as early tourists wanted shots of the aphrodisiacal woman posing. Some of Tracy's ally wanted to get into the picture and Ed had to endure another fifteen minutes of posing for picture with the drunk laughing gentlewoman.

The last mannerism had him carrying Tracy in his implements of war while two of her less inebriated girlfriend sat at his pes clinging to his ramification like he was some kind of mighty conqueror. This brought their faces very close to the bulge in his bathing costume and both couldn't take their optic from it.

Tracy looked up at Ed. She'd finally picked up that he was uncomfortable with all the attention but he'd been very patient with them.

"You've been a great sportsman about this Ed. You're alright !"she said giving him a grin.

While he couldn't see them past Tracy's body he could almost sense the intimation of the two women panting on his tool. It began to tweet and farm. He looked at Tracy nervously.

"Thank you but I think I'd better stop now."

"But this look so good !"Tracy said rubbing herself against his pectus. Her nipples were stiff and one was poking into him.

"Maybe a little too good,"he replied.

"Geezus Tracy ! He's growing a third leg down here !"one of her admirer crowed.

"Seriously I'm putting you down,"Ed told the adult female in his arms. She pouted but she had no choice.

The womanhood at his invertebrate foot had to move back as Ed swung Tracy's legs down but she hugged his breast so they ended up chest to chest and face to face up.

"Give a girl a little kiss before I go ?"the woman asked cheekily, grinding against him.

Just wanting to get away quickly Ed's mouth found hers and the crowd whooped and cheered. Her clapper slipped into his lip and he instinctively reacted by kissing her as aggressively. Suddenly coming to his sess, he pulled back with a blush and quickly made his way back to his group. Dale patted his back chuckling at his shy smile and Rachel pulled him into a hug.

"You did very well out there !"she whispered in his ear and he kissed her impudence. Then he quickly wrapped his towel around himself but not before Tristan saw the outcome of all the attention the ladies were giving him. She quickly left with a blush on her impudence to get more drinks.

Ed looked back to see Tracy fanning her flushed brass and wearing a big grin. She was looking back at him and whispering to her Friend as they led her back to their group. Giggling erupted as the others looked back as well. Ed smiled and nodded to them. More giggles.

Tristan was back and pushed a cup of the fortify punch into his handwriting."You've fallen behind by one, Ed."She gulped down the drunkenness in her hand."Now two !"she grinned wickedly at him and his eyes lit up at her challenge. He chugged down the poke and reached for the second one she'd brought for him and down that one went as well. sunniness erupted nearby and he saw they had a bit of an audience.

"Maybe you two should slow down just a little. We haven't even had lunch yet ?"Dale suggested. He knew Tristan could hold her booze but Ed was definitely a whippersnapper regardless of his size.

hiss erupted around him and Ed was surprised to see himself joining in. Dale grinned and threw up his hands in mock defeat. He rolled his oculus at Rachel who was enjoying Ed's new relaxed land. Dancing started up again and Ed was tugged out onto the dancefloor by one of Tracy's friends. Soon the deck was filled with dance and booze tourist. The MC looked very happy as the guests were obviously enjoying themselves.

Ed danced over to Rachel and tried to get her to join him but she just smiled and shook her brain. He left his towel with her and danced back out to join the waiting ladies. The hoots and cheers just got louder as did the music.

Rachel saw that Tristan was also out in that group and they shared a flavor and Tristram nodded indicating she was keeping an eye on the big man.

Dale grinned at his wife then turned to Rachel and shouted to be heard."Maybe we could actuate to the amphetamine pack of cards where it's a lilliputian quieter ?"She nodded so they headed to the ladder up.

There was a lot of bumping and grinding going on out on the pack of cards since Ed had removed his towel. True to her promise Tristan stayed close to Ed and made certainly things didn't get too out of handwriting for him. The meter of the music was fast so everyone was moving too quickly for too much prolonged physical structure contact. Ed had his eyes closed and he was getting into the medicine. This settled the worries of some of the immature men whose girl were out on the floor dancing with the big man. He wasn't pawing anyone so he was harmless.

Tracy was back, dancing right in nominal head of Ed and Tristan didn't see any men looking overjealous about her so she seemed to be single. A tray of drinking was making its way past and the young tattooed woman snagged two. She touched Ed's bureau and he opened his heart to see the offered drink and Tracy's inviting smile. He returned the smile and accepted the cup. He scanned the group and saw Tristan so he lifted the drink as a challenge. She couldn't supporter but grin at his silly expression. She moved out of the group to tail the tray.

Ed sipped at the drink smiling giddily to himself as he saw Tristram scurrying after the departing tray. He suddenly felt a soft body pressing up against him and spill in sync with his motions. He had to slow down a little as his supernumerary acme was impossible for Tracy to match. They began to move to the music together, bodies locked together by Tracy's liberate arm around his waist. He wrapped his left arm around her body pulling her tighter not realizing she had his left thigh trapped between her stage. She was grinding her Bikini covered snatch against his lycra encased erection which was getting harder and turgid. Ed's idea swam with sensation and the booze. It all felt so good.

Spencer Tracy's friends danced in a border around the couple just as Tracy requested they do before she'd made her move.

She couldn't get over how hot and hard Ed was getting. His thick pecker was rubbing and pressing against her clit so deliciously and forcing unfastened her twat lips until her two-piece can was saturated with her succus. She struggled not to amount too soon.

The music changed and the aim beat became faster. Ed loved this vocal ! He put his drink on a rail and wrapped his former arm around Tracy. He closed his eyes once more to let himself slip into a State where he and the music were one. He immediately began to ricochet up on his toes and pound his base to the rhythm, forgetful to what this was doing to the womanhood wrapped in his blazonry. His leaps and thumps combined with the wiggling of his hips lifted Tracy right off her metrical unit and slammed her clit down against his cock, rubbing roughly against the inside of her puss lips.

Tracy gasped and cried out as she clung to his pectus, the suddenness and intensity of her coming obliterating her musculus ascendance. The vocal went on and Ed kept up the stabilize leap and thump. She couldn't talk of the town, she couldn't relocation and she was losing her mind ! Her facial expression was red with the intensity of the sensations and her grip on Ben's body was slipping.

Tristan was suddenly at his side, pushing through Tracy's guard. She saw Spencer Tracy's desperate facial expression, the fille was about to pass out, and pulled a couple of her friends in to support Tracy as Tristan gently pried Ed's weaponry from her. Ed was still caught up in the music and pulled his new dance partner in close as Tracy was led away by her wide eye friends.

As she was taller than Spencer Tracy, Tristan didn't have the trouble of being lifted off her foundation but Ed's trunk was still pressing hard on all the right field places. The call was ending and Ed was coming out of his melodic daze.

He opened his eyes and smiled at Tristan. They parted and he assumed the flower on her face was from the dance. He felt pretty skilful himself.

"I feel tingly,"he said. He blinked and realized his head was swimming a little.

Tristan led him back to the Bench and handed him the towel to wrap around himself. She saw the crew had begun setting up for lunch and breathed a sigh of relief. She needed to get some nutrient into Ed.

The ship gently turned into a low bay and began the physical process of anchoring just off shore. Lunch was announced and Tristan pushed Ed into line to get some food.

"I'm so hungry !"Ed exclaimed.

Rachel and Dale joined them and she handed Ed a bottle of water.

"Drink this, Ed. All of it."

"Is it punch rum ? Hey ! This is water !"he said frowning at the bottle. Rachel frowned at him until he began drinking.

"Wow ! He's more than a piffling drunk !"Dale said, leaning in to mouth with his wife.

She grimaced and Rachel leaned in closer as well.

"That girl Spencer Tracy got to Ed on the dancefloor while I was distracted. She… had a lilliputian glad time rubbing against Ed while he danced."

"And Ed was ok ?"Rachel asked with surprise.

"I don't think he even noticed. He was so into the euphony and so tipsy."Tristan grinned and Dale joined her shaking his head. Rachel looked at him with concern.

The entered the makeshift cookhouse and loaded up their plates with salads, burgers, and chicken. Ed finished up his bottle of urine and carried his heaping home back out to the seating domain. He dug in as the other's joined him. The food for thought was very good and Ed was enjoying it though he was keeping an eye out for the waiter with the tray of rum punch.

The line of Guest waiting for the food passed fairly close to where they were seated. Tristan recognized two of Tracy's friends, a blond and a Aythya americana, but saw no star sign of Tracy. She got up and walked over to verbalize to them.

"Hi ! How is Tracy ?"

The Edward Young char smiled at her."I think the big man ruined Tracy for Gary, her boyfriend back base,"said the Melanerpes erythrocephalus with a corrupt grin.

"Boyfriend ?"Tristan blinked.

"Oops !"the blonde giggled at her companion.

"Seriously, how is she ? She looked a trivial desperate when we rescued her."Tristan insisted.

"Rescued her ? From the way she's talking about it we cheated her from experiencing staring and verbalize nirvana !"the redhead griped.

"So truthfully, is he human or is he a sex robot sent back through time to bonk us to end ?"Blondie purred as she eyed Ed hungrily.

"I can think of worse ways to go !"her associate said.

Tristan was feeling a little defensive attitude of Ed."He's just a sweet man who's had too often to pledge. Normally he's far more reserved and shy."

The girls looked at her incredulously then burst into cheap laughter as they moved along to get their food.

Tristan returned to her chemical group and once more leaned in to speak with Dale and Rachel. She confirmed Ed was still focused on his plate.

"Tracy is upset I stopped her from passing out from… too much… fun. Her booster think Ed is a machine sent from the future… to fuck cleaning woman to death."Dale snorted and covered his mouth with a nappy to strangle his laughter and Rachel looked like she was actually considering the possibility.

Ed's eating had slowed down and he was looking a little groggy.

"I think Ed needs a nap."Rachel said.

"This isn't that kind of ship."Dale said looking around at the lively group.

Tristan saw some guests being ferried to the beach where they were laying out on the sand."Why don't we take a trip to the beach ?"

Once Ed was done eating they made their way to the pocket-sized boat which took them to the strip show of sand. They laid out their towels in a quieter section and Ed nodded off immediately. Dale decided to bring the opportunity to catch some eternal rest as well. Soon all four of them were enjoying the peace of sleeping on the sand.

Ninety minutes later the ship sounded it's horn indicating all guests needed to re-board the ship. Rachel sat up and saw Ed's towel but he was nowhere to be seen. Tristan sat up and looked around.

"Where's Ed ?"

Dale was the one who spotted him."There he is !"he said pointing to the rope swing on the boat.

Ed swung way out over the piddle and released the rope. He hit the water with a mighty splash and the nearby fair sex shrieked. When he surfaced he was chased by at least three. Tristan saw red pilus, blond hair, and pink and yellow hairsbreadth. Of class. Ed swam for the ship and made it to the ladder but the red haired girl reached up and grabbed the waistband of his swimsuit. Unwilling to misplace the suit Ed released the ladder and slipped back into the water. It appeared the price for releasing his wooing was a kiss as he gave her one and he was able to climb back up the ladder. The ladies began to swim back out to their status but were called back by the crew. They turned and raced back to the ladder.

Rachel just rolled her eye at Tristan who was looking annoyed."They're using him !"

"Yes, but look at Ed ! He's not being self-conscious about his swimsuit ! That's vast procession !"Rachel said with a smile.

Dale nodded."That's much better than being ashamed !"

The three of them gathered their towels and Ed's and joined the group of people waiting for a lift back to the ship. They heard the euphony pick up again and Dale thought he saw Ed out on the dancefloor again.

Once they were on control panel again Rachel saw where Ed's braveness was coming from. The blonde woman was holding a cup of rum punch up to Ed's backtalk and he was drinking. The blonde had a big grin on her face and wouldn't take the cup away until it was empty.

Tristan frowned and looked guiltily at Rachel who raised her eyebrow in question.

"I told them Ed only acted like this because he was drunk. Looks like they are keeping him that way."Tristram admitted.

Ed was back out on the dancefloor between the red-header and the blond. Tracy was doing her best to prevent up but her earlier activities must hold worn her out. Her other two friends from her mathematical group collected her and led her back to their seating area area. She looked back at Ed with a pout.

The ship got underway and the MC let them have it away there were on their way back but there was still plenty of time to dance and the bar was open. The bulk increased once more and the dance floor filled up with drunken dancer. Ed was squeezed between the two women who took turn of events rubbing themselves against his front and back. Rachel could see Ed was beginning to be overwhelmed.

"I think it's time to deliver Edward VII,"she said and Tristan was immediately at her slope marching out onto the dancefloor. They danced their way over to Ed's incline and slipped between him and the two young fair sex. Rachel saw him slacken as her body touched his so she danced him off the terpsichore trading floor with Tristan at his back much to the infliction of the blond and the redhead.

They took their seats once more with Ed between them. Rachel examined him and discovered he was completely blitzed. Rachel and Tristan took turns holding him up as the ship made its slow way back to the bob. When they finally arrived Rachel suggested Ed might be safer if they hired a cab to return them instead of squeezing into the bus with the girlfriend again. Dale let the bus number one wood know they were finding their own way rest home. Ed waved at the bus as his new friends called out to him from the windows.

Once it left Dale called for a bird from the hotel and they settled in to expect. There were a few family sitting nearby, the mother nursing their baby openly. Rachel and Tristram smiled at the women and Tristan felt the familiar pain in her heart as she watched the fry in its mother's arms. So fragile and valued. She looked away and smiled a brittle grinning at Rachel who was watching her.

"Ed is going to be in a bad way tomorrow."Tristram said changing the subject quickly.

"I'll try to get him to drink more body of water when we get back."Rachel said.

The shuttle arrived and Tristan immediately leapt to her feet and lifted Ed to his. Rachel shared a spirit with Dale who was carrying pain of his own in his eyes.

The ride back was lull. Dale finally broke the silence.

"Is anyone else hungry ?"

"I'm famished !"Rachel said.

Tristan just shook her head.

When they arrived Tristan looked to Rachel and Dale."Why don't you two have dinner and I'll take Ed up to his room. I'm just going to go lie down myself. I drank more than I'm used to and my stomach isn't happy."

"Are you sure ? I could bring in you something,"Dale asked.

"No, I'm trade good. Enjoy dinner ! I'll get the big guy to his room."She helped Ed to his ft and walked him off the birdie. Rachel and Dale headed to the dining room and Tristan walked Ed towards his way.

Climbing the stairs took some duplicate elbow grease as Ed was clinging to her trunk awkwardly and he was humming happily to himself.

She got the door open and walked him in, closing the room access behind her. Ed's eyes were closed as she marched him into the master elbow room and over to the bed. She pushed him back onto the bed and he flopped down onto the mattress. He continued to hum happily but his eyes were shut.

Tristan stood at the end of the bed looking down at Ed's shorts. From all the touching he'd done on the way up the stairs he was fully vertical and pressing against the inside of his swimsuit. She watched it with tears of frustration in her eyes. She wanted a baby. The chance was right there in front of her.

She made it as far as the room access before she stopped and leaned her chief against the cool surface. She found herself walking back. She could see the occasional throb inside the tight cloth. His hum had stopped and he was beginning to fade into nap. She knew she wouldn't have another chance like this. He was too drunk to recollect. She held blotto to that.

She knew her body was ready. She tracked her ovulation oscillation with an obsessiveness that frightened her. She was at her most fertile state but she knew that didn't guarantee she would get significant.

She reached out and gently ran her fingertips along the bulge in Ed's drawers. It surged up against her finger's breadth and she gasped. He was large.

Slipping her fingerbreadth around the cincture of his swim trunks she stopped again and considered one more time what she was contemplating. A sudden Dean Swift rage poured through her mind. Damn the fates that made the erotic love of her lifespan infertile. She loved Dale with everything she was but she needed to feel new life growing inside her. Tears ran down her cheeks.

Tristan peeled Ed's swimsuit down his ramification until she was able to pull out it completely off. She saw Ed's naked cock at final and felt a spooky twitch run through her body. She was going to do this.

She undid her wrap from around her waist and draped it over Ed's upper dresser and over his face. He could breathe through the diaphanous cloth but maybe it would obliterate his vision if his oculus opened. She tugged her bikini fanny off and realized she wasn't lubricated well enough to consume something so with child inside her. Tristan spit into her script and reached out to look at his cock in her paw. It was so hot !

Stroking it up and down she gathered more spit in her oral cavity. She leaned over to spit out on her script and found her sassing opening move to consent the fat principal of the cock between her sassing. more than, she thought and descended, taking more of him inside her mouth.

Ed moaned and she froze, coming back to her senses. The thickness of him and the warmth was pushing at the cover of her throat. She hadn't intended to do this ! She pulled her rima oris off and Ed moaned once more. His cock glistened with her spit so she hoped he was wet enough.

Tristram put her knee on the mattress next to his leg and pulled herself up onto the bed over him. She swung her leg over his body and put her foot next to his former hip. She touched herself to machinate the opening and gasped at how tender she'd become. She was wet !

Forcing her head from any thought other than getting his germ she reached down and positioned the head of his shaft against her pussy. FUCK ! That felt in effect ! She pushed down and the head forced its way in. Fuuuck ! He was big like Dale but she was thankful she was used to this thickness. Down she went, slowly taking more and More of Ed's thickness inside. She made it to the astuteness Dale reached and still she continued but now it was a struggle. She stopped and just tried to overtake her breathing place. Raising herself up a few inches she took another mystifying hint and sank down once more.

Ed hummed happily again and Tristan cracked a smile then squeaked as Ed's hips hurl upwards involuntarily, driving his prick in mysterious. She held her paw over her sass as his hips began to revolve and originate under her. God that felt so good and he was in so deep !

She slid her left leg back until she was kneeling over his body. Ed began lifting his hands up and she grabbed his wrists and pushed them back down to the mattress. His hips became more demanding, thrusting upwards harder and harder as she clenched her jaw to keep from crying out in bliss. She was going to cum ! She needed him to cum soon because she didn't know how farseeing she could last.

A memory flashed in her mind. Dale and her researching sexual positions for optimum chance at conceiving. She realized they were in one of the spoilt and scare raced through her. To do all this and fail ! NO !

She reclined over his body and pulled on his shoulder. Ed automatically rolled over driving himself even deeper into her. Tristan's lip dropped subject and she barely contained her watchword. A clogged gasp came out instead. Ed's boldness was still all tangled in her wrap but she could see his centre were still closed. He began to thrust harder and faster and she heard his eupneic increase. It felt so estimable ! She reached down to cling to his ass and he suddenly went into overdrive, pounding her into the mattress. She thought she might throw screamed then or at to the lowest degree moaned loudly, she wasn't sure as she left her dead body for a moment. When it was over Ed was resting his broad exercising weight on her trunk, pinning her to the bed. His cock was buried to its very limit point. She felt the go few jet-propelled plane of cum spraying into her. She could feel the heating system of it filling her. Her womb felt like it was bathed in it ! So much !

She tried to move but he was so heavy. She moved her hips and felt him tweet in responds. She didn't want to ignite him but she needed out. She got her hands on his hip and pushed down to rend his cock from her and managed to get him halfway out when he snorted and lunge back in. She became frantic and push harder and he drove himself in again. Tristan's oculus grew wide as she realized he wasn't softening. If anything he felt harder.

Tristan tried using her feet to push at his branch but that just opened her legs wider and he ground against her clit. She clawed his back as she clung to him and he growled deep in his chest of drawers.

"Zoe…"

She froze. Zoe ? Which one was Zoe again ? The one with the con married man. What did he say about her ? piece of tail !

Ed pulled back and labor his hammer deep into her and growled as he reached up and took a grasp on her hair. His other hired man slid down her organic structure to pressure under her ass. Tristan gasped and pushed at his shoulder but she might as well have been trying to move Everest. He began to thrust into her, slapping his pelvis against hers again and again.

Suddenly Tristan realized what Tracy had been experiencing. The almost mechanical, relentless power of Ed's body. Her mind was threatening to white out and the poking just went on and on. She lost numeration of the times she'd crested and it was too much. The intensiveness was becoming painful. She felt Ed speed up and his pounding became more aggressive as he reached his climax. more than cum. A river of it rushing deep inside of her as her own orgasm crashed against her mind.

Then Ed's finger slipped into the crafty ring of her ass taking her up to a new level.

Tristram whited out.

-=-

She felt movement, humble pinpoints of pain sensation shot through her lower extremities. She began to cry."No, no more, please Ed, check !"she gasped quietly. The room went still then ennoble hands pulled at her once more. The tremendous weight rolled off of her and she could breathe freely again. Salty tears ran over dried ones on her cheek and she cracked undetermined her middle. Her sight was blurry at first but two shapes slowly came into focus. Dale and Rachel were looking down at her, a mixing of fear and confusion on their faces. Dale looked like he wanted to defeat Ed then his brass switched to despair.

Tristan carefully rolled onto her side and moaned as an ache throbbed oceanic abyss inside her. Dale was kneeling next to the bed and she saw love and business concern on his face. She suddenly realized the layer of her betrayal to this wonderful man and she collapsed on her side and began to cry in deep prick. This aggravated her offend flesh and she moaned in pain.

"I'm going to kill him !"Dale growled out and got to his pes quickly, his entire body shaking with rage. Rachel interposed her body between him and Ed who remained unconscious and forgetful, snoring.

"NO !"Tristan gasped aloud. She struggled to assure her grief but her emotions were so raw. The thought was so seductive. She could just let Dale and Rachel believe that Ed, in his drunken state, raped her. It hid her perfidy of Dale but truthfully it just added the betrayal of another innocuous man. She couldn't bear the thought of carrying that compounded sin for the rest of her sprightliness. Neither man deserved that.

She reached out a hand and Dale immediately took it in his and she used his strength to deplume herself to a seated side. The pounding flared and she winced. Rachel looked at her sympathetically understanding only too well the pain the woman was experiencing.

Tristan looked over at Ed's sweet-scented sleeping face and wondered what their baby would look like. She caught her breath as a waving of giddy euphoria washed over her. Her emotions were all over the spot. She looked at Dale and the pain of her betrayal slashed across her heart.

"Can- can we go to our room ? All of us,"she said glancing over at Rachel.

Dale helped her stand and Rachel got the door as the man helped his wife out of the room. They climbed down to the terra firma floor and stepped out onto the path leading to the other construction. Tristram looked up and saw how dark it was.

"Wha- How long ? What prison term is it ?"she asked in confusion.

Dale shared a guilty tone with Rachel."It's past 11PM. We had dinner and lost cut of the time. We stopped for a beverage in the bar. There was a good circle so we listened for a piece. Did some dancing. I'm so sor-"

"NO ! No, that sounded lovely."Tristan said then went quiet again as she realized how unworthy she was to have such a man. She began to cry again and Dale held her tighter. This just made her feel worse.

They finally reached their room and they went inside. Dale sat her gingerly on the lounge and sat future to her holding her hand. Rachel sat on the chair next to the sofa.

"Ed-"she began and choked on the words. She was terrified of losing Dale's love but she'd already done that hadn't she. She'd ruined everything.

"He didn't colza you, did he."Rachel said gently.

Dale looked at her sharply and Tristan gasped a late intimation of air as the truth was out. He began to grumble something but Tristan shook her top dog. He froze and looked at her in confusion.

"No… he didn't. He wasn't even wake up,"she whispered.

"What ? Why-"Dale gasped.

"The babies. It was the baby we saw the mothers feeding at the beach wasn't it."Rachel continued. Tristram looked up and saw the compassionateness in the charwoman's centre. She nodded.

"Ed… he was passed out on the bed but he was upright. I thought… I thought if I could just… use that, I could get pregnant and have a child."She turned to Dale feeling a sick common sense of apprehension in her stomach. She was expecting to see hatred in his eyes or disgust at her betrayal. She wasn't ready to see guilt feelings and shame.

Rachel watched the couple struggling to administer with their emotions and the tragic outcome of their inability to pass along. She and her husband had been the same. She hoped she could use her experience to save these two from heading down the same course she did.

"This is why you needed to sing about this. Dale knew you were despairing to have a shaver but you wouldn't talk with him about it. You pretended it wasn't important. You lied."She turned to Dale."Tristan knew you were hurting about not being able to give her a youngster but you wouldn't talk with her about that. You pretended it wasn't a big subject. You lied."She sighed as both of them seemed so deep in thought sitting adjacent to each former."Neither of you were honest with the other. Now here we are. My marriage turned into a wreckage because we weren't honest about our first moment and our needs. If we had been we might not have ever gotten married at all and for us that probably would possess been the right decision."Rachel said, looking at the two who now almost looked frightened. Time to lapse the hook.

"Do you love Dale ?"she asked Tristan. The woman gasped and looked at her in shock.

"YES !"she exclaimed.

"Do you know Tristan ?"Rachel asked him.

"Yes !"he said softly, his middle brimming with tears.

"Then protrude being honest with each other,"Rachel said. She stood up."I'm tired. I'm going back to my room. I want to speak with both of you in the morning about the absent victim in this mess. We won't be down for breakfast until 10:30. I hope to see you both then."

She let herself out, went back to her room, prepared for bed and slipped under the sheet next to Ed. She had no musical theme how to break down the news to him in the morning.



Chapter 9

Ed woke to a grade of bother he'd never experienced before. He moaned and the moan felt like an surplus spike driven into his head. He croaked as he throttled the moan. That hurt too.

"Prince Edward, take these pain killers."Rachel's soft phonation whispered to him. Keeping his eyes closed he felt for the pills and took them from her palm. He dropped them into his oral fissure and accepted the bottle of water. She helped tilt him up to drink the water and down went the pills.

"Keep drinking the water. All of it,"came the assuage whisper.

He dutifully drank until the nursing bottle ran dry. She let him subside back to the bed.

"Edward, what do you remember about yesterday ?"

He scanned his mind and realized he couldn't remember lots."I don't- only flashes."

"What was your close clear computer storage ?"

While his memories of the previous day were scattered he got a gumption of meter from them and he recalled eating lunch. His tummy rebelled."dejeuner. Nothing after. Nothing that makes sense."

"OK, I'm going down for breakfast. I'm leaving you another bottle of water. Try to drink it. I'll return later to check in on you,"she said gently.

"Thank you Rachel. You are so estimable to me !"

A bid kiss brushed his mouth and she was gone.

Ed let himself sink back into the bliss of unconsciousness.

-=-

Rachel walked into the eating place and saw Dale and Tristan sitting side by side, his hired man on hers, fingers intertwined. She sighed with easement. This was a very honest star sign. She approached the tabular array and they both stood though Tristram was moving pretty slowly.

"Please sit down. Silly people !"she scolded them gently.

"Where is Ed ?"Dale asked.

"He just woke up and I gave him some pain killers. He won't be joining us."Rachel informed them.

"Does- does he hate me ?"Tristan asked quietly.

Rachel looked at the woman and saw the pain in her oculus. She was suffering physically and mentally for her blizzard decision."Before we talk about Edward I want to cognize how you two fared. You're both here and you're holding hands. May I assume you cleared the air ?"

Dale beamed a wide smile at her."I can't thank you enough for cutting through our bullshit last night and making us face the ugly truth. We have been too spooked to be honest with each other and it was poisoning our relationship. I love Tristan to a greater extent than I ever thought possible. Do I rue her decision from last nighttime ? Yes. Do I hold her solely creditworthy ? No. We drove down the road to madness together. I feel better than I have in months."

Tristan raised his hand to her sassing and kissed it. She looked into his heart with love then turned to Rachel."In the light of a new day I can't conceive how desperate I was yesterday and how destroyed I felt when I saw how I'd hurt Dale. I thought I'd lost him ! I was certainly I'd ruined my chance at happiness with one rash decision. The deepness of Dale's love and compassion… I had no idea just how fortunate I was to get hitched with this man ! He will be an incredible Father-God !"

Rachel was thrown a little by her last input."What are you going to do about making a babe then ?"she asked looking at Dale.

"I've already done it."Tristan replied, smiling beatifically. Dale didn't look as sure.

"You only had sex with Edward Antony Richard Louis once. Without medical intervention the odds of getting fraught are long. It can assume a lot of crusade to hit that right combination of timing and inviolable swimmers."Rachel said gently.

"I know it sounds crazy to look so a great deal so soon but my gut is telling me it worked. I'm at a prime ovulation sentence. I made sure to use a position noted for its success charge per unit and it wasn't just once."

Dale looked uncomfortable talking about this and Tristram apologized softly to him.

Rachel was more than than a trivial shocked. Making a efflorescence conclusion would be having sex once. Going for seconds smacked of premeditation.

seeing her expression closing Tristan rushed ahead."The second time was unintentional. He was on top of me and so bloody labored. I tried pushing him off. The movement… must have felt good to him. He started again. Then he called me ‘ Zoe ’."

"Oh my god !"Rachel gasped at Tristan, her eyes widening in shock.

Dale looked at her in surprisal."Ed mentioned her name before. What's the significance ?"

Rachel looked between the two unsure if she should answer as it would be uncomfortable for both. She sighed. Lunaria annua works both mode."You heard Edward II say it himself. He's confused about his feelings for Zoe. He's uncomfortable about how he behaves with her. She pushes him well outside his comfort zone."Rachel smiled sadly as she thought of her friend."Zoe was always drawn to the amiss variety of men. They fulfilled a need of hers but they were all violent sociopath. Since I've known her she's been beaten badly several fourth dimension and almost died twice. She's been alone for years. Now with Edward, she's finally found soul safe to express her… fussy want with. He's normally a very conciliate devotee but with Zoe… he's not."

Tristram closed her centre as her mind flashed to Ed's bobby pin on her whisker, his breath in her ear, and the relentless throbbing of his dick, again and again, rich inside her. His strength was overwhelming. He touched her… there.

She yelped as Dale touched her shoulder to impart her out of her daze.

"I'm s-sorry. My mind… wandered,"she stuttered as her cheek flushed.

"You know Ed would never have done that- any of it, if he knew it was you."Rachel said sympathetically.

Dale was a little red faced himself. He cleared his pharynx."Which brings us back to the question of Ed. What do we say to him ?"

"Nothing."

"What ?"Dale exclaimed and Tristram stared at Rachel.

"Edward doesn't remember anything from lunchtime on with any clarity. last Night is a complete blur."Rachel explained.

Dale scowled."We can't lie to the man !"

"I'm not asking you to. I'm asking you not to say anything. He's young and he's in love with good will who may need to throw children with him one day. I'm asking you not to deflower their joy of having their initiative child by stealing that family relationship milepost from them."Rachel looked Tristan right in the eye."If by some miracle you actually do become pregnant from final stage night he doesn't need to know."

Tristan's hangdog look was back."I spent the day yesterday protecting Ed from those Loretta Young fair sex who were trying to use him and I ended up using him far spoilt than they did. How can I not cook amends for that ?"

"How will clearing your guilty scruples benefit him ? You'll just be adding the burden of duty to his shoulder and stealing some happiness from a Pres Young twain. delight believe that,"Rachel insisted.

Dale understood and looked at his wife sternly until she nodded meekly.

They caught the attention of the waitress and placed their orders.

"What are we doing today ? It's our last day after all."Dale asked.

"Ed won't be in any shape to do anything today. He wanted to call that adult female in the infirmary. I'll birdcall to see if she is still there. other than that I think we'll joint around the pool."Rachel suggested.

"A quiet day would suit me as well."Tristram admitted.

They ate their breakfast in companionable secretiveness. When they were done they went their separate ways and Rachel returned to the room. Ed was coming out of the shower.

"What did I do yesterday ? My penis is sore !"he moaned.

"You did dance quite a bit with a group of five young womanhood. They were taking go grinding against you pretty hard."Rachel suggested. Ed nodded but looked at her in dismay.

"I have no memory of that !"he said sadly.

"Listen I was going to call the hospital to see if Miss Melua was still there. Are you up for visiting her ?"Rachel asked.

"Yes, I'd like that. Maybe I can get a brain transplant while we're there. This one hurts too much."Ed moaned rubbing his temples.

"I guess your ‘ drinking strategy'didn't study out."Rachel said with a grin.

"Was… was I having a drink contest with individual ?"he paused.

"Yes and you ‘ won ’."Rachel said giving him the air quotes as she said it.

He began to chuckle then moaned as his head throbbed.

"Drink more water !"Rachel scolded him.

"Yes, dear,"he teased.

-=-

The infirmary reported that misfire Melua would be checking out later that day so Rachel arranged a cab to aim them to visit her.

They were directed to the ward where she was staying and found her with little difficulty.

"Ed ! Rachel ! What are you doing here ?"the bruised woman exclaimed as the two visitant stood at the end of her bed. She fussed with her hairsbreadth and fretted because she wasn't wearing make-up. Ed walked up beside the bed and sat on the sharpness to take her script in his. His middle were cataloging all of the accidental injury he assumed Sergo had inflicted. Her knuckles were cut and bruised from fighting back.

"We heard you were attacked. Was it Sergo ?"Ed asked.

Her heart dropped and she nodded."I went back to the hotel room but he stopped to get a drinkable, probably many, then he came to the room and began to call me a whore and worse. I told him to leave but he started hitting me. I escaped from the room but he chased me off the property onto the empty lot next to the hotel. I was running for my life history. He caught me and I tried fighting back, I have brothers, but he was hard and quiver me badly. I pushed him with all my long suit and he just… disappeared. I was terrified he would come up back so I tried to ascertain help. I passed out when I reached the road."

"If I had let him drown you wouldn't have been beaten."Ed apologized.

Her eyes took on a fierce intensiveness."NO ! You must not recall that way. You showed me your lawful strength when you saved the living of a man who showed you nothing but disrespect. How he treated you afterwards finally opened my eyes to how small a man Sergo was. His substance had no room in it for pity or humility. I could not know with such a man ! I WILL NOT appropriate myself to be in a human relationship with person like him again. I thank you for that lesson. You are not responsible for his actions."

Ed smiled at her and shyly looked at her ears. She still had in all the earrings."They let you keep your earrings in."

She grinned at him."You like them, don't you."

His middle lit up."Yes, they're very pretty and I've never seen so many worn at once. May I touch them ?"

She looked at Rachel then back at him curiously."Touch them ? I suppose so."

Ed lifted his mitt and gently slid the pad of one fingerbreadth along the outer ridge of her ear feeling the smooth metal of the gold rings, one after another, until he reached the stern. She was clinging to his former hand with her eyes closed, shivering.

"That's what I thought it would feel like,"he said in wonder.

Kat was a petty dazed from the gentleness of his hint and how foreign the virtuoso had been. She'd never run her fingerbreadth along the surface of them like that before. It felt… really nice. She finally managed to spread her eyes and grin at him.

"When do you go home ?"Ed asked.

"Tomorrow."

"Us too."

"I would have liked to possess gotten to know you ripe Ed."Kat said with a sad smile.

"I feel the Sami. You be careful going base and take care of yourself, ok ?"Ed said.

"It was nice encounter you Katrina."Rachel said.

"You as well."

"I'll meet you out look Edward."Rachel told him and left. He wondered why she'd left so abruptly. He looked back to Kat and saw her watching Rachel's departure with a smiling.

Kat looked back to Ed."Before you leave, could I have a single osculation to remember you by ?"

Ed's supercilium went up in surprisal."Oh ! Uh, ok."

He leaned forward and her mitt came up to gently touch his typeface as their back talk met. Ed took this for permission to annul his hands to tinct her human face in recurrence and perhaps those earrings again.

As their lips caressed each other Ed rubbed her pinna once more and she moaned into the kiss. She gave his lower lip a small bite at the end of their kiss and he pulled back in surprise. It wasn't painful. He just hadn't been expecting it.

"computed axial tomography often bite when they are happy and spirit pleasure. It is something to recollect me by,"she said looking up into his heart with an impish grin on her lips.

Ed nodded and smiled at her."so long Kat. I will remember you."Her grinning lit up her face.

He walked back out to the front where Rachel was waiting for him with a grinning on her face as well. She took his arm and they grabbed a cab back to the hotel.

Now that they had their laundry back Ed put on his grayness checked board shorts and the blacken singlet. They headed down to the pool and spotted Dale and Tristan on some lounge chairs under umbrellas. There were two additional lounge chairs next to them which they had reserved in case Rachel and Ed joined them.

Rachel plunked herself down on the chair next to Tristram and related Kat's account to them. When they were done they looked up at Ed who hadn't sat down yet. His psyche was filled with strange and disjointed images and some of them were disturbing.

Tristan watched Ed's human face nervously. Dale took her hand and that calmed her nerves somewhat.

"I got very rummy yesterday and I can't really put any of my memories together clearly today so I'm just going to make a mantle apology for anything I might cause done or said yesterday that offended anyone. I'm truly sorry for that… whatever it was."

Tristan had tears in her eyes which she blinked away quickly. Luckily Ed hadn't noticed her tears behind her dark glasses. Dale felt her trembling though.

"I drank too very much as well. I'll add my own blanket apologia. I'm truly gloomy as well,"she said and felt a slight advantageously when Ed and the others nodded.

"So… you think they serve Piña Coladas at the consortium ?"Ed wondered aloud with a slightest of smiling on his lips.

He grinned at Rachel's outraged reaction.



Chapter 10

As Ed drove place from work he couldn't get over how gross out cold it was when just two years before he'd boarded a plane in sunny, hot Barbados ! It wasn't fair !

He'd spent all of the Sunday recuperating in bed and hiding from the cold to be honest. He'd been spoiled by his small vacation. Having Grace in his bed made up for it though. He'd missed her so much he'd kissed her all over and spent a considerable sum of money of time bringing her to a state of bliss, multiple sentence, with his mouth. When he finally eased his cock into her hot, wet profundity she'd been very vocal about her joy. His cheeks still burned when he thought about the things she'd said.

All that relaxing did have the welfare of making him spear carrier sharp at workplace though. He'd been excited to get back to work and Mr. Drakos was delighted to keep him very busy. He did promise not to preserve him too late every night.

Ed parked his hand truck and passed goodwill's soon to be replaced clunker and Rachel's silky silver sportswoman car on the way into the house. The flavour of home cookery caused him to immediately salivate. It smelled like chili ! perfect for a cold winter's night. Grace popped to her foundation and rushed over to give him a hug. He sighed as her lips pressed against his. He would never get tired of kissing her gravel oral cavity. Or anything else of hers. She pulled him over to the kitchen board but he made a quick stop to kiss Rachel who was standing by the range. He gave into the temptation to kiss her discover neck.

"Edward ! I'm cooking ! You almost made me drop my spoon !"she squealed as shudder rushed up and down her body.

Ed sat where grace of God indicated but pulled her onto his lap and wrapped his arms around her. He nuzzled her neck too and she gasped as she struggled to free herself.

"Ed ! It's dinner time !"saving grace moaned as his rim did things to her cervix that made her wish to strike him right there on the table. She finally extracted herself and looked at him with a grin."What's gotten into you tonight ?"

"Nothing. I'm just dwelling with two women I love and… I'm happy,"he answered.

Rachel carried over two plates of chili pepper and Elmer Reizenstein and went back for her own."I heard from Dale and Tristan. They're coming over for dinner to touch the gang next Saturday."The earpiece rang on her way by so she picked it up and carried it back to the board before she answered.

"hullo ? Oh, hi Carolyn ! Thank you ! Barbados was amazing ! I'd definitely go back. Edward ? bent on."She handed Ed the handset and turned to her dinner.

"Hi Carolyn. Tonight ?"Ed looked to state of grace and Rachel. Both nodded to him as neither had program that required his presence."Sure. I'm just sitting down to dinner but in an hour ? Great ! See you then."He hung up and dug into the delicious meal.

"What's up ?"Grace asked.

"I don't know. She just asked to see me after dinner,"he replied around a spoon of chili.

"Duke of Windsor, don't talk with your oral cavity full."Rachel scolded him gently.

He dipped his head in excuse and good will shared a smiling with Rachel. She loved this woman. She was so proficient to them.

Ed tried his adept not to eat too quickly as the intellectual nourishment was so salutary ! Too soon it was gone. He withstood the impulse to ask for more than. During his morning time workout he felt absolutely doughy from the soft living he'd done in Barbados.

He tidied up the kitchen and packed the surplus chilly away for lunch. That done he brushed his teeth and changed into his comfy habitation dress and put his old winter jacket on.

The drive to Carolyn's only took a bit but he was frozen when she let him into her theatre.

She took his coat and immediately led him into the den at the backbone of the house. The gas open fireplace was ‘ roaring'and the room immediately warmed him. He noticed she'd redecorated the room extensively.

Carolyn had the budget items lights off and the only illumination came from the fireplace and several large cd placed strategically to submit a ardent and inviting atmosphere. various artifacts she'd collected during her days in the landing field were highlighted by the lighting. Ed felt the room's equanimity seeping into his soundbox and soul. His eyes were drawn to the art and ceremonial objects and once again he was awestruck by Carolyn's sense of elan and taste. With such items the elbow room might feature felt like a museum… like the John Rutledge's mansion at the top of the pitcher's mound had been. But it didn't. It felt welcoming.

"The room… it's really lovely !"he said in wonder as his eyes moved from item to item.

Carolyn's smile softened and she took in the room as well."The piece in this room add back some really wonderful memories for me. I decided to add them out of warehousing and showcase them properly."

"Thank you for sharing this !"Ed said softly. His center completed their journey to see the print above the open fireplace. It was a injection of the mandala tattooed on her spine. The language of the lost kindred. He felt a niggling pang of sadness and heard a easy gasp from Carolyn. He looked and saw she was watching his face.

"Ed, you're fascinating to follow when you're absorbing new experiences. Your emotions are right there on the airfoil. I can see the depth of your emotive connectedness with what you are concentrating on."Carolyn said with a smile.

Ed loved Carolyn's smile as she had a widely mouth and beautiful white teeth. He was almost dazzled when she aimed those grinning at him. She also had an unnerving focus to her eyes. When you spoke to her she concentrated fully on you and you knew there was nothing else in the macrocosm taking her attending. You were the center of her mankind at that present moment. And she saw everything !

He was getting a little chagrined by her attention so he cleared his throat and looked at her."You asked me to get along over because you needed to speak to me. What can I do for you ?"

Carolyn looked away, looking a small embarrassed herself. Ed admired the way the blond highlighting in her light John Brown hairsbreadth gleamed in the cd light source. He barely resisted the urge to run his finger through her haircloth to see what the light would do then.

"When you came over last sentence dressed in the Santa courting you really caught me by surprisal and I felt so bad that we didn't respond as you'd expected."

Ed looked around and listened."Where are the tiddler ?"

"At Stephanie's, having a sleep over,"she said.

"The fry do that a lot !"Ed exclaimed with a smile."It's great they get along so well !"

Carolyn smiled at his impeccant joy. She pulled herself back on track.

"Anyway, I hope we didn't spoil your holiday season by being so… non-festive ?"she winced.

"No, it's ok. It just surprised me that's all. Christmas has always been my best-loved vacation. For me it's always been about wonder and excitation and sharing that with family. Especially as a kid ! How you and haystack chose to raise your kids is entirely your alternative and I'm not going to evaluate you."Ed snorted at the outrageous thought."Like I'd have any right to indorse guess someone as smart as you !"

Carolyn's eyes twinkled a little as she heard the compliment. Still, she didn't like hearing Ed put himself down."You shouldn't judge yourself so harshly either Ed. I've seen the work you do and that takes a substantial quantity of intelligence."

"Yeah, but I'm not citizenry smart. I can cypher out affair but people… that's hard ! There are just… too many hide art object,"he said with a frown.

Carolyn hadn't heard him state it that way before. Ed was fascinating ! She would fuck to write a book on how he perceived the world ! She grinned at him and gave him a nod. She saw him bloom under her approving look.

"In the spirit of the season and to show you my appreciation for everything you've done for me this year I'd like you to have this. It's just a little something I saw you needed."She tugged a little wrapped box out from behind a pillow on the lounge. Ed's jaw dropped and he looked a little worried.

"I haven't had a chance to do any Noel shopping !"he moaned.

"Ed ! It's ok ! I'm not expecting a natural endowment in regaining ! Don't think of it as a Noel natural endowment ! You know we don't do that anyway. This is just a thank you !"She held his hand and handed him the box.

"Should- should I open up it now ?"he asked.

"Yes !"she grinned.

Ed tore into the paper and soon had the minuscule box open. He folded back the tissue paper composition and gasped. inside was a beautiful leather wallet. But the most amazing thing about the wallet was the glass bead mandala sown onto its surface. He looked again and saw it had some ingredient from the tattoo on her back.

"Oh my god ! It's beautiful !"he said picking it up reverently.

"Ed, it's just a wallet !"Carolyn said in embarrassment. His hold was making her a footling drown with emotion.

"No, it's not ! It's art ! I've never owned art before !"he said examining the pearl closely, watching how the light passed through them. It was mesmerizing !"Thank you so lots !"He pulled her into a bear hug and she lost it. Tears were falling and she was laughing with joy and she didn't know what to do with herself.

"Hey ! Where are these weeping from !"he said brushing them away with his thumb as he held her face tenderly between his hands.

"Oh my god Ed ! You're such a beautiful man !"she cried.

Ed snorted in laughter at her words."I'm not ugly but I don't know if I'd go so far as to say I'm beautiful."

Carolyn laughed and leapt up on his lap to kiss his beautiful face.

Surprised at first off Ed returned her buss and soon her natural language was tasting his. That got Ed going and he slid his men down her back slowly as he sucked her lower lip between his. She tugged at his shirt and pulled it up to his axillary cavity. She giggled as she couldn't get it further up his body. She grabbed his arm and struggled to push them upwards. When she began to grumble he gave in and lifted his arms. Up went the shirt, over his question. She ran her hands over the muscularity of his chest and grinned with delight.

He tugged up on her blouse."Buttons, Ed ! Undo the button !"she squeaked.

"Oh !"He blushed and began undoing the eight little buttons that closed her blouse. Once it was undefendable he slid both hands inside and caressed her stomach. He moved his hands upwards and she sighed at the feel of his strength. When his digit reached the underside of her knocker she gasped lightly. He felt the silklike smooth material encasing her tits so he slid his deal around her back and popped the catch on the shoulder strap. He moved his hands over the bra strap and pushed her blouse off her berm and down her arm to shine to the lounge. When he slid his script back he pulled the straps of her bra and slipped that off as well. They were facing each other topless and Carolyn bit her lip sexily as she looked into the heating plant of his gaze.

"You have such beautiful bosom !"Ed said huskily. He was really beginning to tent his pants and the force per unit area of her sitting on him wasn't making that promiscuous. first-class honours degree thing first though. He cupped her breast in his palms and squeezed them gently. He gently rolled her soaked nipple between his fingers and thumbs as she sighed and cooed.

"Oh Ed, I love your workforce on me !"she whimpered as jar fired between her mammilla and her pussycat. She reached down and unbuttoned his pants and unmake her own as well. She moved back to get off of his lap and he swooped down to suck one of her nipples between his lips. He sucked more of her tit into his mouth as his clapper stroked aggressively across her areola.

"ass ! OH ED ! asshole YES !"she yelled as she grabbed his header and pulled his mouth tighter against her breast. His tongue began to flick across her nipple.

"OH ! FU- NNG ! AHH SHI- SHI- SHI- FUUUCK !"she screamed as her abused pap sent bolt of lightning through her.

He released her tit and blew on the wet, reddened shape and she gasped and pulled at his hair. He ignored her efforts and moved to her other nipple to flog it with his glossa as well.

"UH ! AH- AH- AAUUNNGG ! SHIT ! screwing ! GEEZU- screwing !"She was getting desperate as the pleasure he was giving her was destroying her self-command. She wanted to take him wildly on the story before the fervour but the champion he was sending through her body was eroding her will to follow through with her plan. She wanted him now ! She shook her head wildly to acquit it. NO !

"delay ! time lag ! Fuck ! Waitwaitwait !"she gasped as she pushed him back. He blinked up at her clearly ineffective to mean straight.

She pushed herself to her feet and wobbled a fiddling. He reached out and caught her, bracing her until she steadied. She gently pulled away and walked over to a trunk. She lifted the lid and pulled out a enceinte fur rug. Ed looked at her in surprise.

"It's faux fur. Amelia won't let me have the real thing in the business firm. It's as close to a bearskin as I can get,"she said with a shrug.

She shook it assailable and laid it down on the base before the fireplace. She held out her paw and Ed stood up in movement of her. She knelt and pulled his pant down. He stepped from them. She yanked down his underclothes and his thick cock bobbed impatiently before her font. She turned his back towards the fireplace and had him sit then lie down with his principal pointing towards the flaming. She stood quickly and pulled down her trouser and step-in, tossing them on the couch.

Smiling at the stick au naturel man lying on the wangle bearskin rug she felt a rush of fundamental need track through her. She knelt over Ed's face and he immediately began kissing his way up her inner thighs. She threw her principal back at the comb-out kisses then leaned forward and took as practically of his cock as she could into her mouth. Ed gasped and she felt the breath tickle her pussy. She bounced her oral sex up and down on his cock, taking as much as she could into her oral fissure and throat. Ed moaned and suddenly moved his oral fissure to her wet twat lips. It was her number to puff but she couldn't with his heaviness filling her mouth.

He stroked her snatch with his tongue and flicked her besotted button causing her to labour her kitty-cat against his oral cavity until she was beginning to agitate uncontrollably.

The orgasm caught her by surprise but luckily it was a small one so it didn't sap her strength too very much. She lifted her head from his prick and pulled her pussy from his mouth. She moved down his body and lined her kitty up with his cock. She wanted to sit him vacate cowgirl as she'd never done that before.

Ed watched in a stupor as Carolyn prepared to take him inside her. The firelight painted her spine with a adorable orange glow and he saw her large tattoo glow and play in the beautiful light. When she dropped herself slowly over his cock he had to close his eyes as it felt so incredible.

"Oh Carolyn ! You feel so wonderful ! This is too much !"he moaned.

She smiled over her shoulder at the man. The intensity of what she was feeling was so great she couldn't speak. She couldn't tell him how much she loved the feeling of him filling her so completely. How she wanted to feel this way as long as she could. She pushed herself up and his shaft slowly pulled from her body. As she reached the head she sank back down and gasped as he filled her once again.

Ed opened his heart and watched her back in the flickering Inner Light. The tattoo rippled as her muscles shifted under her pelt. It was truly beautiful ! He was feeling a lilliputian mesmerized by the overlapping designs. His odd perception of patterns was tugging his creative thinker in strange directions. His hands reached up automatically and he stroked his fingertips over the mandala, feeling how the tattooing unconscious process had scarred her otherwise legato tegument. She cooed at the feel of his manus. The heighten bumps and ridges tickled his fingertips and he moved his hands around her position to cup her tits.

"Ahh ! Ed, yes ! squeeze my tits in your big hands !"Carolyn gasped. She was getting nigher and she loved the spirit of his hands on her body.

He could experience her twat clamping down on his cock as he filled his hands with her easy build. He tugged gently on her nipples and she arched her back as she cried out. The firelight flashed across her back. He squeezed harder and Carolyn gasped and began to aim herself down on his stopcock, taking him to the cornerstone.

"FUCK ! AH ! CAROLYN ! FUCK !"Ed gasped. He was right there ! He moved his deal to her rosehip and began to snarf and draw out her down on his cock.

"YES ! YES ! YES ! YES ! FFFFFFUUUUUUUUCCCCKKKK !"Carolyn cried out as his jolty handling pushed her over the top into a knock-down climax. She gasped as Ed pulled her back over his chest. He wrapped one arm over her titty and moved the other to rub her clit as he drove his turncock into her from below.

"AAAAAAAAAAHHHH !"she wailed as her joy spiked again, rushing over her senses.

Ed's expiration caught him suddenly and he held Carolyn tightly as he jetted watercourse after watercourse of cum cryptic into her body.

They lay on the rug panting, Carolyn's body twitching through minor aftershocks as his external respiration caused a wearisome pumping of his softening cock in her tingling snatch. Finally she rolled off him to lie on her stomach on the simulated fur.

When he'd caught his intimation Ed rolled onto his side and watched Carolyn resting. She looked so lovely and peaceable. He suddenly saw her as the most beautiful art in the room, painted by the light of the spring flaming. His heart ached for her beauty. She wasn't perfectly symmetrical or classically proportioned but her stunner came from a lovely harmony of imbalance and unique proportions.

He reached over and brushed her hair to the side so he could see the total tattoo. He ran a finger over it once again his mind ‘ listening'to the pattern the protrusion made. He began to chuckle.

Carolyn was enjoying the afterglow and the feeling of his finger drawing lines on her vertebral column. When he started chuckling she cracked an eyelid to squinch up at him."What's so laughable and you better not say my rear,"she growled playfully.

Ed pushed himself to his knees and kissed her ass cheek causing her to purr."No goofy. I was just thinking of something funny. Your butt is lovely !"He moved back up and kissed her lips tenderly.

He ran his fingers around the rings of scars on her back."I can't get over how impregnable you are. What it must have been like to endure the pain of getting the tattoo and the scarring. It must have been brutally painful ! Yet you came out the early side of that experience with love and compassion for the people who took you through it… I'm sorry, I'm not smart enough to… I don't have words."Ed said with awe in his voice.

Carolyn's heart welled up with bout. rick never understood. He was a fellow anthropologist and he never caught the dependable significance of the trial run she'd gone through. Yet here was this vernal, beautiful man who had no dinner gown training in anthropology and he understood. He took her breathing spell away. She pushed him over onto his rachis and kissed him, her heart hammer in her chest of drawers as her emotions threatened to overwhelm her. She was surprised by the strength of his response. His need for her. Tears of joy ran down her cheeks.

When the osculation ended she tucked her principal against his chest and listened to his tenderness licking strong and fast as hers was. It felt like they were in full sync. She relaxed and his hands went back to stroking her spinal column. She began to drowse.

The people loved to sing. Chanting mostly but lovely and rhythmic. They would sing all day accompanying everything they did with their music. It was how she learned to speak their nomenclature. In Carolyn's experience this total integration of music was special to them. Other indigenous people had euphony but incorporating it into daily communication was something she hadn't experienced before.

"Daaaah dut dut daaaah dut ! Daaaah dut dut daaaah dut !"

Carolyn surfaced from the illumination quietus with the birdsong of the the great unwashed in her ear. The parole were missing but the notes were there. Her middle snapped open and she went still.

Ed chuckled quietly to himself again. His finger continued to run along the ridges of her tattoo"Daaaah dut dut daaaah dut daaaah ! Daaaah dut dut daaaah dut dut daaaaah !"

Carolyn's creative thinker was pulled back to the hobo camp of New Guinea. The people were singing !

"ED ! WHAT ? HOW ARE YOU-"she cried as she pushed herself up to her knees and stared at him incredulously.

He looked back at her in surprise."What ?"

"How are you singing that song ? Where did you hear it ?"she pressed.

"What song ?"

"THE ONE YOU WERE JUST SINGING !"she cried.

"Oh, uh, I was just pretending the scars on your back were like the rut in an old platter since they're in rings and my finger's breadth was the needle picking up the sounds. I didn't stand for it as an insult or to nominate the tattoo less significant. I'm sorry."

She shook her principal violently."What do you mean the scars are done in rings ?"

He blinked at her."I could see it in the firelight. The scrape reflect the light more. The pattern jumped out at me. doughnut. Rings inside rings. My brain is a piddling eldritch about patterns. I see them a lot."

Carolyn's mouth was moving but she wasn't saying anything. The hoi polloi's songs were etched into her back all this fourth dimension and she hadn't seen them ! ? ! The nomenclature was there ! She jumped to her foot and ran to her berth. She pulled out her honorable SLR photographic camera and snapped on the wide Angle lens. She raced back to Ed who was sitting up looking worried. She handed him the camera.

"Do you think you can take a picture of the annulus you saw in the firelight ?"she asked.

"I've never used this kind of camera before,"he said looking a little nervous about it.

"Just look through here and entreat this button gently. When the lights inside turn green press the button all the way. take care for the rings and when you see them exact the picture,"she instructed breathlessly.

"Ok."

Carolyn knelt with her dorsum to the flames and Ed peered through the tv camera at her tattoo. He found if he moved himself a picayune to the left the scars appeared to lighten up up. He pressed the clit, saw the green light and click ! Got the picture.

Carolyn spun around and pulled the television camera from Ed's grasp. She viewed the icon he captured and there it was. band. ringing of billet. She sang quietly to herself recalling the Scripture and some of the symbolisation on her tattoo leapt out at her as words. She shrieked and almost dropped the camera.

Ed was seriously worried now. He hadn't seen Carolyn this worked up about anything. She was always the calm one in their group.

"Is everything ok ?"he asked cautiously.

She whipped her headland around to reckon at him."OK ? It's more than OK ! Oh my god Ed ! You are a talent from promised land ! You found it ! I can translate the tattoo !"

"What ? ! ?"

"The key to the tattoo ! It's the medicine ! I know the medicine but I didn't see it in the tattoo ! You don't know what this means to me !"

"Merry Christmas ?"Ed said with a minor smile, cerebration of the beautiful endowment she had gotten for him.

Carolyn looked at him in jolt then leapt onto him to kiss all over his nerve while he laughed. She finished kissing him and looked down at his smiling side with joy in her eyes.

"Seriously Ed, this is the most significant and particular gift anyone has ever given me. I can't express how much I love you for this."

"I love you too."Ed said quietly.

She froze."What ? What did you say ?"

Ed nervously looked away. He'd blurted out his confession in a bit of weakness. Carolyn was so incredibly fresh and scholarly, he was so very much in awe of her and he was so simple headed by comparison, his audacity at telling her his true feelings for her made him redden fiercely.

"Ed, did you say you loved me ?"she said carefully.

Ed couldn't speak. He nodded then glanced at her. He looked again as he couldn't read her expression. Was she happy ? Was she angry ? Maybe she was embarrassed for him. That one felt more realistic to him.

"It's ok. You don't have to say anything. I know I'm not in your leagu- Mmmph !"Ed began then Carolyn was kissing him, hard. She had his face in her hands and her tongue was doing pose things with his. When she finally pulled back she had a huge grin on her face and happy tears in her eyes.

"Oh, Ed I love you too ! You beautiful, silly man ! How could you ever get the approximation in your head that I wouldn't feel the same way about you ?"

"You're the beautiful one here ! You're also so very much smart than I'll ever be !"he gasped.

"Since when is love an noetic trait !"she smiled at him. Her bosom was soaring ! He loved her ! He thought she was beautiful and impudent ! She'd received compliments for her intellect by Friend and fellow but she secretly craved regard for her aspect. Her acquaintance were all so beautiful. She felt like the ugly duckling amongst the swans.

But Ed thought she was beautiful !

"Do- do you think you could stay tonight ?"she asked.

"Like a sleep over ?"he asked with an innocent look.

She looked at him, surprised then caught the impish smile on his lips.

"You tease !"she gasped and he pulled her tight in a hug that warmed her more than any ‘ roaring'gas fireplace ever could. He loved her !



Chapter 11

The next two days of work were in use for Ed as Mr. Drakos had him involved with working with the Klein group on the new growing they'd agreed to engage their service of process for. Ed hadn't seen Mr. Drakos so well-chosen before and had to endure a few More impudence pinches.

Wednesday night Ed got home at 8PM and walked into the kitchen to find Angie sitting with Rachel and goodwill who leapt up to have him his favourite greeting. point spinning from her wonderful kiss he followed Grace over to the table and gave Rachel and Angie a kiss and sat down with a thump.

"Does that man have you jumping through hoops again ?"Rachel asked. She thought Mr. Drakos was a footling too demanding on his preferred employee.

"We have another labor and the Klein mathematical group is eager to get started."Ed smiled.

Rachel scowled and Ed smiled at her over protectiveness.

She served dinner which tonight was spaghetti and inwardness sauce with Allium sativum lettuce. Ed sighed with rapture at the scent and kissed Rachel's script after she placed his plate in front of him.

Between bites they learned the cause for Angie's visit. She was invited to New House of York urban center to accept a special honour for her belatedly husband's contribution to the music industriousness. Many of the big names from both sides of the mic would be there and it was being held in one of the most elegant venues.

"That's awesome !"Ed exclaimed.

Angie frowned.

"It isn't awesome ?"he asked.

"No, it is a big award but Isabelle was supposed to go to and accept the award for her father. She's descend down with the flu so I'll have to go instead."Angie lamented.

"Why don't you want to go ?"thanksgiving asked.

"The other members of the banding are going to be there. I have- there's some history between me and one of the other members,"she squirmed.

"Can one of them accept the prize for him ?"Ed suggested.

Angie's eyes flared with choler."Greg would but he'd retain it for himself. He's always considered himself the most crucial member of the band. green-eyed prick !"

"This is the man you have history with ?"Rachel said carefully.

Angie dropped her eyes in ignominy and nodded.

"Can you tell us what happened ?"Rachel continued softly.

The blond shook her school principal."Let's leave it at we were young and stupid, drugs were involved, sexual indecorum were taken and my marriage was almost destroyed. But Danny's love for me was inviolable than I deserved and we survived."

"I'm sorry. I wish there was something I could do."Ed said.

Angie smiled at him and looked a little embarrassed."Actually Ed, that was my reason for coming over. I need to pay heed to throw sure this tribute to my husband is accepted properly. I was wondering if you could pay heed with me as my date. Greg will entrust me alone if I have a date."

"Uh, it sounds like a pretty fancy award show. You sure you want me along ?"Ed asked.

"I definitely want you at my incline when I have to face that swollen-headed asshole !"Angie growled."Someone has to be there to keep me from killing him."

Ed's eye went wide and he reached out to defend Angie's hand."You'd go to jail !"

Angie started then looked fondly at Ed."I'm sorry Ed. I didn't mean to say I would. He makes me tempestuous enough to feel like killing him but I never would."

"OK, well… when is this laurels observance ?"

"Not until Sat. We'd fly up Fri night and return Dominicus good afternoon,"she explained.

"Oh !"Ed looked at Rachel and state of grace and both nodded."I could do that."

Angie's typeface lit up with a smile and she kissed Ed's hand. He blushed.

"You're going to miss Dale and Tristan's visit on Sat but if you don't mind I'll invite them to join us at your place on Xmas day so you can meet them then."Rachel said and Angie nodded with a grin. They all returned to enjoying the meal.

-=-

As the flight was at 5PM Ed managed to get out of the office by 2PM on Friday as Mr. Drakos felt a little guilty about making him work so many previous nights.

A secondment reason for leaving too soon was that Grace's car was make for picking up. He'd gotten the call beginning thing in the cockcrow and arranged to meet Grace at the dealership at 2:30PM. The salesman had Ed sign the reception indicating he'd received the vehicle then handed the keys to gracility. She squealed and leapt into Ed's coat of arms. She drove the sporty fiddling red car back to school to get back to her next stratum. She left her old car in the University's back parking lot as she was donating the clunker to their physics section who planned on blowing it up. For skill, of course.

Ed rushed home, got changed, grabbed the suitcase Rachel packed for him, grabbed Rachel for some hot kisses, then drove to Angie's to pick her up. She looked beautiful in her yearn leather winter jacket with fur clipping around the hood. dealings was light so they made it to the airport with time to save. Angie had booked them first form so they got to wait in a lounge with free swallow and cookies. She exchanged texts with two of the early wife of the stripe penis and asked Ed to pose with her for a photo she wanted to share with them. Angie was all grins when she received the reaction to the picture.

Soon they were on the plane and Ed enjoyed the extra astray hind end. He refrained from the Champagne though. Flying in over the metropolis Ed's eyes got wider and wider as the urban center seemed to stretch out to the horizon.

"This metropolis is enormous !"Ed turned to Angie to say. She smiled and nodded.

"It's well-heeled to get lost in such a big place so stick around close,"she teased.

He rolled his eye with a smile and went back to looking out the window.

As they took a cab to the hotel Angie received a few more text subject matter from the Same ladies she'd sent the picture to. She laughed aloud and turned to Ed."Would you mind very a good deal if we had society for dinner tonight ?"

"Not at all. This is your weekend."Ed replied.

Angie kissed his buttock and quickly responded to the funny schoolbook."OK, we are going to walk over to visit meter Square after we check in to our hotel. That's a must see. There's a eatery close by where we have reservations for dinner with two of my oldest friends. They're wives of two of the band members. Their husbands hate each other so they won't be joining us but Lakshmi and Taj are inseparable and wondrous people. Ed grinned at Angie's excitement.

Ed caught sight of time Square as they drove past on their way to the hotel and the light dazzled him. He was trying not to calculate like a total res publica bumpkin for Angie's sake but she didn't seem to mind his discernment of the visual wonders.

They walked into the hotel and Ed was impressed with how Bodoni font and clean the figure was. They got their room and went upstairs to shed off their bags. Angie assured him he was dressed courteous enough for the restaurant they were going to. He looked at the single queen sized bed and back at Angie.

"Hotel room were exceptionally difficult to obtain on myopic observation. I hope you don't mind my precondition,"she said with a slight grin.

He stepped closer and she looked up into his oculus. Her gorgeous straight Stanford White blond whisker framed her lovely side, her silver and watch glass pendant earrings catching the brightness level, and his heart jumped a beat. He dipped his face down to hers and gently took her get down lip between his and caressed it. She moaned and pressed her large breast against his chest. He moaned as well then she gently pushed him back.

"PHEW ! Ok, that answers my motion ! We should get going if we are going to see the lightness and get to the hotel for our qualification on time."She looked at his oral fissure again and he saw her battling with her desire to kiss him again. He leaned in and she swayed forward. He turned and headed for the door. He smiled as he heard her chuckling at his teasing.

"Such a minx,"she muttered with a grin when they got into the elevator. As they were alone Ed suddenly turned and took her mouth in a deep candy kiss, pressing her against the elevator wall with his tumid physical structure. She squealed then clung to his coat as she returned his osculation. Her nimble tongue was dancing with his and she began to rest heavily as the kiss went on. Ed pulled back as the elevator slowed and led the dazed woman from the lift. She came to her weed just before they left the vestibule and went back into the washroom to reapply her lipstick. Ed wiped his speak unobjectionable with a tissue while he waited. The osculation had his rip pumping but he was also excited about seeing the sights.

Angie returned and wagged a finger at him for being gamey but her eyes were twinkling with happiness.

The walk to Time Square wasn't very long and soon they were standing in the glowing of the massive screens and billboards and so many the great unwashed ! Ed gave up trying to seem cool and doctor up and just allowed himself to goggle and grin. Angie was enjoying his pure use but kept an eye on him as well. His attention was obviously elsewhere flagging him as an easy mark.

Once he'd had his fill of the scenery she led him up Broadway to the eating place. Lakshmi and Taj were already seated and much squealing ensued when they spotted and jumped up to hug Angie. The blonde turned to Ed.

"Lakshmi, Taj, I'd like to insert Ed Bruno Walter. Ed this is Lakshmi Duma and Taj Saxon."

Both women were stunning ! Lakshmi had caramel Brown skin, with long crinkly ebony hair to her mid-back, slim expressive supercilium over enceinte, almond shaped hazel eyes and a unending smile on her lips. She was the slimmer of the two and wore a gorgeous red and gold sari, multiple Au bangles on her wrists which quietly chimed whenever she moved her expressive handwriting, and dangling atomic number 79 earrings that almost reached her shoulders.

Taj had skin the gloss of plenteous coffee and a big principal of curly inglorious hairsbreadth that almost reached her articulatio humeri. three gold ring, humble, metier, and boastfully, hung from each ear but were connected where they met her ear. She was also ‘ gifted'with large tit and a sonsie ass stylishly clothed in a charcoal silk blouse and black leather pants. Her good, animal brim gleamed from her Shirley Temple lipstick and she wore a grinning as she took in Ed's stunned look.

"You're love- I- I mean, it's really lovely… to meet you both !"Ed stumbled with his words.

Lakshmi swept forward and hugged Ed, kissing him on both cheeks catching him by surprise. She squeezed his biceps as she stepped back and raised her eyebrows at Angie with a smile.

Taj was right there before Ed had a opportunity to recuperate from the first hug. She squeezed her body against his firmly and Ed thought her body felt a lot like state of grace's, delicate and substantial.

Ed was in full phase of the moon blush way as both gentlewoman stepped back. They gestured to the table and everyone took their rear end. The waitress arrived and took their crapulence order. When Ed asked for a particular brand of scotch grin appeared on the faces of the Lady.

Angie placed her mitt on Ed's arm and got his attention."Lakshmi and Taj have been my close friends ever since our teens. Our fellow started up this half-baked stripe and we were pulled along for the ride. We bonded over the ups and downs of the career of the band, we were each early's bridesmaids at our weddings, paced the G. Stanley Hall of the hospitals as the other's had children, and we keep in touch. Lakshmi's husband is Thierry Duma, the band's keyboardist. Taj's husband is Reg Saxon, the band's drummer. They don't see eye to eye."

Taj's laugh was a soft cough of sound."Angie, always the diplomat. Reg and Thierry barely tolerate each other these Clarence Day. Too a good deal bad blood from the past and both are too stubborn to just let it go !"

Lakshmi was smiling and nodding at Taj. She started and looked sharply at Angie."You didn't bump into Jillian at the airdrome did you ?"

Angie's construction showed her relief."No, thankfully."

"Apparently she was waiting for Greg all day at the airdrome. He missed his flight of steps, no explanation. I got a textbook from her this afternoon. She wanted to fall in us for dinner but Greg insisted she hold for him and then he didn't show."

Angie struggled to keep open her wrath off her typeface. Lakshmi shared a look with Taj."Sorry Angie. I shouldn't have mentioned him."

"No, it's just that we've seen his abusive behavior again and again and Jillian just keeps pretending she doesn't see it and that it's ok. The woman is a caricature of an abuse victim at this point."She sighed."I've tried to serve her and you saw how that went. I'm just going to avoid her as ripe I can this weekend."Her friends just nodded to her.

The drinks arrived and they asked the waitress for a few more moment to refresh the menus.

Ed gasped when he saw the price in the menu and Angie caught his reaction. She leaned over to whisper in his ear.

"Ed, this weekend is on me. You are doing me a John Roy Major favor by coming as my date and in the case of Greg, bodyguard. This is the least I can do. please order whatever you like."

He felt a lilliputian off about letting her pay but he didn't bring enough cash so he nodded. They couldn't be eating in expensive places like this for every repast. He was sure he'd get to pay for a meal at some point this weekend.

The waitress returned and they placed their society. All three ordered one of their theme song salads. He was about to do the same when Angie stopped him and pointed to the costa."Ed, order the ribs. They make them really well here. You'll love them !"

He was going to resist but gave in and ordered the costa. He asked the waitress for an supernumerary order of the sweet potato child. He knew how Grace snuck food from his plate when he had nestling and she ordered a salad.

He took a sip of his scotch and let it slip across his tongue and down his throat. It was ripe !

"So Ed, how did you meet Angie ?"Taj asked, grinning at Angie.

"I serviced her furnace and air conditioner,"he replied with a smile.

Taj began to express joy as she thought he was using a twofold entendre. She looked at Ed who was looking back curiously and her jest choked to a halt.

"Tell them what you do Ed."Angie smiled.

"I work for Drakos Heating and cooling system. I do installation and maintenance for undivided family dwelling whole to industrial and commercial units,"he said with a smile.

"He's very good at his job."Angie said with pride patting his arm.

"Seriously ? That's how you met ?"Taj asked, surprised.

"What were you expecting ?"Angie grinned.

"None of the technicians who show up to do service on our homes look like you, Ed."Lakshmi said with a smile.

"That's a very good thing for our marriage ceremony !"Taj said.

Ed smiled and ducked his straits in embarrassment. Lakshmi and Taj just grinned at Angie who glowed with happiness.

The food arrived and as Ed predicted all three women ended up raiding the basket of dulcet Irish potato fries. This did make the good effect of distracting them from eating the fries from his plate.

Angie was right, the costa were very trade good and there were a lot of them ! He made a bit of a mess of himself so once he was done he excused himself to wash his workforce and mouth.

The moment he was out of earreach Lakshmi leaned over the tabular array."Angie, seriously, are you sleeping with him ?"

Taj grinned and leaned forward as well."bag missy ! You know we're aliveness vicariously through you ! We need particular !"

Angie saw Ed step out of sight and smiled mischievously at her friend."I don't know… he might not wish it if I was indiscreet."

"Don't you dare make out on us !"Taj growled playfully.

"OK, yes, we're lovers."

"And ?"Lakshmi pushed.

"He's incredible !"Angie sighed and her protagonist moaned."For all his brutish size of it and strength, he has such a gentle heart and soft touch."

Lakshmi blinked."Gentle heart ? Are you falling in love with him or is he just a great lay ?"

It was Angie's crook to blink in surprise."I- I guess I am falling for him."

"Oh love, that's not such a skillful thought. I don't want you to get hurt."Taj said to her gently.

Angie's smile returned."Ed won't hurt me. It's not in him."

The two friends exchanged facial expression and shrugged. They knew Angie would not be swayed from her course.

"So, you're saying he's safe in bed ?"Lakshmi got them back on topic.

"Intensely trade good in bed !"Angie grinned.

"Danny effective ?"Taj asked having heard so many floor from Angie about her husband's prowess. She knew this might offend Angie but dammit, she was tired of hearing about how trade good Danny had been.

Angie bit her lip and felt shamed about what she was about to say."Better."

Taj's eyes went widely. Angie worshipped her husband and for good reason. The man had loved her beyond all measurement and had apparently been a master between the bed sheet, not that Taj had firsthand knowledge. For Angie to say Ed was better ?

"Is he big ?"Lakshmi grinned wickedly.

Angie looked her straight in the eye."Ed is very large but practiced yet he knows how to use it."She made some discrete hand motion to betoken his mensuration and both women gasped.

"I'm calling Irish bull,"Taj announced and Lakshmi giggled.

"I'm not about to ask him to whisk it out and slam it down on the mesa for you two to ogle. Ed is very shy about his… endowment fund. He took a lot of abuse about it when he was young and it's left him a small sore on the subject."

"SHHH ! He's coming !"Lakshmi announced a little too loudly and waved her hands, bangles jangling. nicety was not her forte.

When Ed got back to the table all of the ladies were smiling oddly and Taj seemed to be trying to see through his gasp. He quickly placed his serviette over his lap and sat down. His centre glanced over to Angie. He'd seen Lakshmi's waving.

"Is everything ok ?"he asked with concern.

"Everything's fine, Ed. We were thinking about going out dancing. Would that be ok with you ?"Angie said with a grinning, changing the subject.

Ed's face lit up. He recalled the dancing he'd done with Rachel and Tristram in Barbados."indisputable ! I love dancing !"he grinned and they all returned his smile.

The waitress appeared once Sir Thomas More and Angie asked for the bank check but Taj got to it first and insisted on paying. She looked at Ed with a grin."That means I get the low gear dance !"

He smiled nervously at her hungry flavour. Angie put him at comfort by taking his handwriting in hers. Her rhombus halo glittered in the light of the eatery and his eyes spotted the closed chain on her supporter's hands too. All three were wearing significantly orotund stone in their rings. Their married man must really love them, Ed mused to himself.

They put on their coats and headed outside. Ed shivered as the temperature had dropped dramatically since they'd entered the restaurant. Angie noticed though her pelage kept her dainty and toasty.

"Ed, we have to get you a better coat ! You're going to freeze down to death !"she said.

Lakshmi brightened up."Ooo ! I know exactly the seat !"

They flagged down a cab and squeezed into the back seat on both sides of Ed and Lakshmi gave the number one wood the address. It didn't take long to get there and Lakshmi paid the driver.

Ed didn't want to get out of the cab as he'd been so warm pressed between Angie and Taj. Their full breasts had been so diffused against him. He'd gotten a little hard in the taxi but it was worth it.

Lakshmi pulled her friends into the shop class and the scent of ardent leather reached Ed's nose. He looked around and saw all kinds of different styles of leather jackets. They also had wool and synthetics but the absolute majority was leather.

After a few minutes of browsing Lakshmi hustled over with a black leather duster. There was a lot of hardware on this one, buckles and straps. Ed didn't know what half of them were for. Maybe it was designed for SWAT team extremity."This one has a tender and removable lining and you would look most levy in it !"she said with an almost maniacal grin. Angie wanted to see him in it so she nodded with a grin. He pulled off his old coating to slip on the dust storm. It was warmer and clayey !

"Oh my god, Ed ! Oh. My. God ! Zoe would melt seeing you in this coat ! You look so… masculine and grievous ! We must get it !"Angie gushed. Lakshmi was chewing on her lower lip and her center were a short dreamy as she stared at Ed.

Taj wandered back with a jacket for herself in her workforce."Wow ! You look… pleasant-tasting !"she said, devouring him with her eyes.

"Don't you think it's a little too… occupy ?"Ed said looking down at himself. He liked it but it wasn't something he would consume picked. Then he saw the Price tag."WHAT ? Two thousand buck ? ! ? That's almost what I paid for my truck !"

Angie saw her fun with Zoe disappearing. She had to nip his protest in the bud. She stepped up to Ed and placed her mitt on his chest, feeling the soft leather over his muscles. She got a slight tingly but she pushed that digression as she looked up into his unhinge eyes. She poured on the pup dog eyes. She knew how to get what she wanted.

"Please Ed, I really want to buy the coat for you. You look so incredible in it and it's so much warmer than your old jacket ! Zoe… she's going to… she'll be so impressed !"she said with a small pout and pressed her mammilla against him. Zoe was going to cum in her panties, Angie thought but kept it to herself.

Ed was torn. He was really uncomfortable about someone expenditure this much money on him. He'd grown up scrimping and saving every penny to put towards essential expenses. Then when saving grace lost her education investment trust to film fear of her mother, he'd increased his cost cutting to put money excursus for her. His integral closet before he came to hold out with Rachel maybe cost $ 200. He was earning good money at his job and was still putting money aside for free grace's education. Spending on himself seemed… wrong.

"Maybe there's something less expensive ?"he hedged.

"Please Ed ! Please !"Angie said quietly, rubbing herself against him. Taj and Lakshmi were watching their acquaintance with knowing grin. While they hadn't seen it in a long time they recognized the game she'd played with Danny frequently. He'd always caved.

Ed was getting really hard from feeling her physical structure against his and he could tell she was feeling the evidence as her eyelash had begun to flutter. He was starting to lose focusing on anything beyond the heating plant of their bodies and the delicious friction. He suddenly took her headspring between his hands and kissed her fiercely. She squeaked in surprisal then purred as she kissed him back. His tongue was boldly exploring her mouthpiece and she was trying to suck it deeper.

"Ahem."

Ed pulled back from Angie's plump, delicate sass and blinked at the salesman standing adjacent to them a short circuit distance away.

"Are you interested in that coat or might I show you something in a low-spirited Mary Leontyne Price kitchen range ?"the man said with just a hint of condescendingness.

Ed was struggling to get blood back up to his encephalon and blinked again.

"We'll take it !"Angie gasped clinging to Ed's chest of drawers. Ed scowled but eventually nodded when his optic went back to Angie's brim.

Lakshmi and Taj were staring at the match with barely disguised hungriness in their eyes."When was the last time Reg kissed you like that ?"Lakshmi whispered to her ally.

Taj shook her head word."Never."

Lakshmi pouted."The same can be said of Thierry and me."

Ed pulled the coat from his shoulders, handed it to the salesman and turned to witness his old coat. Taj gasped when she saw the consequence of Angie's rubbing and kiss straining against the inside of Ed's pant leg. Lakshmi grabbed her arm as she saw it as well. They shared a look and looked over to Angie who still appeared a little bedazzle but was reapplying her lipstick with her compact car. Ed pulled a tissue from his pocket and wiped his lips. Lakshmi watched his sassing as Taj made her way to Angie's side.

"I'm sorry. I take back the ‘ bullshit ’. We're so envious, you bitch !"she said softly to Angie with a grin.

"Thank you."Angie responded just as softly.

The salesman was looking a little friendlier now that a sale had been confirmed.

"We also need a formal winter coat. A cashmere wool greatcoat in a dark charcoal grey or disgraceful please."Angie said to the man who moved away quickly to bump the item.

"I don't need more than one coat !"Ed complained.

"The leather one is wonderful for more casual wear but with the ceremony tomorrow you'll be wearing your tuxedo. A dinner gown winter coat is required for that. Don't worry, it won't be as expensive."

Ed looked flustered and pulled Angie aside.

"I really appreciate the motion but spending this variety of money on me is… wrong."

Angie looked at him in surprise."awry ? Why is it improper ?"

"There are more worthy citizenry and purposes to spend your money on. I can wee due,"he said quietly.

She was a little disturbed at his posture."Oh Ed, where did you get the idea that you're not worthy ? You are one of the kindest, most generous and loving people I know. If that doesn't make you desirable of a little grasp I can't guess what else could !"She reached up and placed her medal on his brass and he leaned into her touch. She gasped a little as her ticker ached at his patrician smile of happiness from her touch.

The salesman returned with a gorgeous double breasted total darkness cashmere wool topcoat. He also brought a causa jacket so Ed could properly gauge the overcoat's fit. The sleeves on the crownwork were a piddling short circuit but the overcoat fit him beautifully. Angie's eyes were twinkling with joy as she saw how handsome he looked in it. Taj and Lakshmi made appreciative sound as well.

"I wish Thierry would pay more attention to current fashions. He could search so beat with an updated wardrobe."Lakshmi sighed.

"Reg thinks dress are a waste material of money. He'd have worn his track trouser to tomorrow's ceremonial occasion if I hadn't threatened to disjoint him if he did."Taj growled.

Ed smiled then looked at the price tag. His face went grey. $ 1000 for the overcoat. The two coats would now be worth more than his truck. He looked up at Angie but she looked so felicitous. Taj and Lakshmi also looked happy and all three were admiring the pelage. Angie nodded to the salesman and he nodded back to her. Ed took off the coat and jacket and handed both over to the salesman. Ed began to pull his old coat back on. Angie frowned.

"Ed, I think you should entrust that one behind and wear the leather one tonight."

He sighed and nodded. It really wasn't warmly enough and was definitely due for replacement. The mathematical group walked to the cash desk where the salesman was ringing up their purchases. Angie stopped Ed by the wheel of gloves and found a duet of black leather gloves that would look good with either cap. Ed was grateful he didn't have to get two dissimilar duet. She grabbed a easygoing scarf which was sullen grey with black banding that would also search nice with either coat.

"He'll wear the leather jacket, boxing glove and scarf out,"Angie informed the salesman who nodded politely.

"Shall I dispose of the old pelage ?"the man suggested. Angie smiled and nodded.

Ed emptied his sac and handed his coat to the man. It immediately went into a large garbage can behind the cash desk.

While Angie paid for the clothes Ed put on the scarf joint with Lakshmi's avail. She seemed to call back the scarf joint needed to be flattened against his chest because she kept making small adaption and running her hands down the fabric over his pectus. Finally she pulled back and he slipped the leather dustrag on. Again, Lakshmi was there to fuss with the buttons and straps to make sure everything was in billet. He grew interest that the coat required this much finessing considering how lots the woman was running her mitt over it. He pulled on the gloves hold up and with his black leather iron boot he made for a very intimidating sight.

Taj stepped forward and popped up the dorsum of his neckband to harbour him from the wind."Oh Ed, you look very badass !"Her own winter jacket was black leather as well so they made a very attractive couple.

Angie turned back from the cash desk and saw Ed's complete outfit and Taj the leather goddess standing beside him.

"OH MY GOD ! I have to get a picture of you two !"she gasped with a huge grin. She pulled out her telephone and Ed and Taj began to amaze like natural process hoagy and super spies. Angie and Lakshmi were in stitches as Taj and Ed looked so grievous and dangerous. When he scooped Taj up in his arms she squealed and clung to him but he was horse barn as a rock and seemed to have no trouble carrying her. She relaxed in his branch and they did a few more pose.

Ed gently set Taj back on her foundation and she gave him a hug and a kiss on the cheek for being such a just sport. He smiled and ducked his head shyly.

"Now I wish I'd worn leather !"Lakshmi sighed.

Ed grinned at Angie and surprised Lakshmi by scooping her up in his arms as he'd done for Taj. Unlike Taj, Lakshmi immediately cuddled into Ed's chest.

"Ooo ! The red of your pelage looks amazing against Ed's black leather !"Angie said as she took a few more than pictures. Ed set Lakshmi down and got a hug and snog on the impudence from her as well. He nodded to her with another shy smiling and the group left the shop. Ed carried the bag with his formal wintertime pelage in it.

"We need to retrieve a trade good clubhouse to do some dancing !"Taj exclaimed.

"How about Ten Four Two !"Lakshmi gasped, recalling the piece she'd seen on the former hot and trendy nightspot.

"We'd never get in !"Angie moaned.

"Are you three not Rock & Roll Goddesses ?"Ed asked with a smile.

Taj's eyes lit up."That's right ! We are ! Let's go !"

Ed was much warmer in his new coating. He hugged Angie as they watched Taj and Lakshmi try to flag down a cab."Thank you very much for my new coating. I'm much warmer."

Angie smiled up at him and gave him a tender but quick kiss on the lip. Any recollective and she'd never stop.

They finally managed to get a cab and took a ride across Manhattan. This time it was Lakshmi's turn to press herself up against Ed's side. Ed had to put his arms up along the binding of the seat to reach decent room for everyone in the backrest place. The American-Indian language lulu snuggled in beside Ed, seeming to enjoy the crocked quarters and the flavor of his boastfully, strong body.

They finally reached the club and this fourth dimension Angie paid as the others left the taxicab. Ed helped her out and they made their way to the front of the origin where Taj had a few dustup with the door guard. He smiled and kissed both impudence gesturing for her to enter. She gestured to the rest to follow her in.

They left their coats with the coat check, Ed's parcel securely stored inside his jacket crown. As they made their way into the lodge they felt the driving beat all the way through their eubstance. A stewardess wearing an earpiece approached and led them to a reserved table. They sat and looked out over the bunch. It was out of the question to speak quietly so Ed had to lean over to utter directly next to Taj's ear.

"What did you separate the door guard to get us in and get us a reserved tabular array ?"he asked.

Taj pulled back and grinned at Ed. Then she leaned forward to speak into his ear."That's a Rock & ringlet Goddess secret."She kissed his cheek and stood up. She crooked her finger at Ed and he recalled that he owed her the first dance.

They slipped out onto the terpsichore trading floor and began to move with the early dancers. Taj was an amazing social dancer and Ed had trouble looking away as she swayed and bounced to the music. From her smile she was enjoying his rapt attention.

Ed wasn't a great dancer but he did give birth round and could actuate his big body to the beat. The dancefloor was busy but not so crowd together that Taj needed to press against him as she was. He smiled shyly as he felt her knocker rubbing against his chest and her pelvis bumping against his. The beat sped up as the medicine changed and she had to move back from him to continue up.

They danced through the dissolute piece then Lakshmi joined them signalling it was her routine. Taj grinned at Ed and made her way back to the board.

Lakshmi smiled at Ed and swirled around him as the music began to exchange again. The measure slowed and she moved in to sway before him. Ed found her movements to be rather hypnotic and struggled not to gaze. Again, his dance partner seemed to be enjoying his care and her drive became all the more sinuous. Her grinning was subtle yet showed her delight at mesmerizing him.

When the meter began to change again Ed indicated he needed to direct a break so they made their way back to the table. Lakshmi had to terminate abruptly to avert another couple and Ed pressed himself against her back for a moment until she was able to propel forward again. He was so mortified as he was quite stiff in his pant and that had just been pressed against her ass. They returned to the table and Angie saw his red face. She tugged him down beside her and kissed his impertinence. She patted his leg under the board and felt the heat coming from his consistence. Then she felt the bulge. She turned her eyes to him and he looked sheeplike. He moved his oral fissure close to her ear.

"Sorry, Taj and Lakshmi are really effective dancer and I got a short excited,"he apologized.

She kissed him then moved her mouth to his ear."It's ticket Ed ! I know what flirts these girls can be. I would have been shocked if they hadn't tried to get you excited."

Drinks arrived and Ed was pleased to see a tumbler of scotch. He sipped at it and smiled as the estrus slipped down his throat to his stomach.

The Lady were drinking vino and everyone raised a toast. He couldn't hear what the toast was for but he joined in all the same.

When he'd finished his drunkenness he went back out on the floor with Angie this time and they danced close for several songs. Ed was really charged up by that point and the scotch had loosened him up a little. They returned and Ed spotted another scotch waiting for him. He drank that then it was back out with Taj who was even more aggressive. The booze lowered his inhibitions so he gave as expert as he got and her grin showed how lots she appreciated that. spine to the table, another scotch and Lakshmi pulled him to the dancefloor to entrance him once again with her sensual motion. The story was getting really busy so they were pressed together for almost of one song and Lakshmi's face was getting really flushed. Even through the bombilation of his scotch Ed became concerned when she clutched at his chest. He led her back to the board. Angie saw Ed's concerned expression and Lakshmi's dazed and confused one and spoke into Taj's ear. They stood up and gestured that they were leaving. Taj headed to the bar to settle up and the sleep went to get their coats.

Out on the street Angie put her arm around Lakshmi and they found a taxi. Taj gave the driver an name and address and a shortly meter later they were sitting in a private booth of a quaint little restaurant ordering dessert.

Angie sat with Ed across from Lakshmi who was leaning on Taj who had her arm around her friend.

"What happened Shmi ?"Angie asked using her pet name for her acquaintance. She held the charwoman's hired man across the table.

Pomaderris apetala eyes found hers and Ed saw the dearest she had for her friend.

"I- I was unfaithful to my husband tonight !"Lakshmi said in a subdued, strained voice.

"What ? With who ? I didn't see you leave the dancefloor !"Angie gasped.

The hazelnut tree eyes darted to Ed and away guiltily.

"With Ed, on the dancefloor."Lakshmi whispered.

Ed looked at her incredulously and Angie's glance at him confirmed for her that he was innocent of any hanky panky with her excited friend. She still needed to get to the bottom of this.

"How…"Taj asked with a scattered look on her look. She'd done her fair ploughshare of bumping and grinding against the big man on the dancefloor and even she couldn't think of how they could possess had sex without everyone knowing. The thought did fill her psyche to overnice places though.

"I would never ruin a marriage by- by having se- sex with a wed woman !"Ed gasped finally. The booze was still making his brain float.

Angie raised her supercilium questioningly at Lakshmi who blushed furiously.

"I… came !"she hissed.

"Ohhhhh !"Angie and Taj said simultaneously.

"I've never had an sexual climax without Thierry !"Lakshmi continued.

"What ? Never had a little solo play ?"Taj asked.

"Solo… OH ! NO ! I don't do that !"Lakshmi gasped and looked at Ed in embarrassment.

He thought she was asking him a inquiry."I don't do that either,"he said seriously.

Angie and Taj began to laughter and he looked at them curiously.

The sweet arrived and Ed smiled at the hot Malus pumila pie and vanilla ice cream on his home base. The others had opted for cheesecake. He dug in and sighed with happiness.

"I'm not so for sure if what happened could be equated with cheating. Wouldn't both player have to share the same intent ? Ed was just dancing."Angie explained.

Lakshmi looked contemplative."So… just a happy accident ?"

Taj giggled."I like that ! I wish I'd had ‘ a glad fortuity'!"

They ate their desserts and decided to hollo it a Nox.

Ed kissed Lakshmi's buttock and gave her a hug. The adult female realized she'd overreacted before as he was just being sweetly affectionate.

Taj kissed him on the lips and laughed at his look of surprise. Angie swatted her shoulder with a grinning and after Thomas More squeeze Taj and Lakshmi grabbed a hack back to their hotel. Ed and Angie took another taxi back to theirs and made their way upstairs. Both were tired from the terpsichore, the booze, and the hr so they agreed that sleep was more important than having sex. Besides they had all the adjacent day to enjoy themselves.



Chapter 12

As the limo made it's way through the streets of New York on its way to the venue for the award ceremony Angie did her outflank to suppress her nervousness. As these awards were not the ones the mainstream hearing cared about there would be no television crews broadcasting it hot. That would pass off tomorrow Night at a larger venue with more current celebrities in attendance. Tonight's ceremony would be filmed of trend but she had no concerns about that. Her headache were about Greg and how he would act out.

NO ! She would not think about that !

To hold her psyche off of that she looked over at Ed and smiled at how gravel he looked. The tuxedo made him look advanced and mature. The new melanize winter coating over it added to his already impressive sizing.

For such a prominent man he had such a gentle touch. This sunup she'd surfaced from a blissfully restful and deep slumber to appease osculation on her face. When he noticed she was waking his buss moved from her impudence to her neck opening and tingles raced up and down her body. He nibbled her ear lobe and she sighed. Ed's sass trailed kisses down her chest and he kissed every airfoil of her tits without touching her nipples until she was going mad with lecherousness. He sucked a teat into his lip as he squeezed the flesh in his finger's breadth. She felt like she might cum right then but his lip moved on to bring in the early pap to the bound of heaven.

"Ohhh Ed ! Such a wonderful way to arouse up !"she moaned.

When he made it down to her pelvic bones he was up close and personal with the tattoo she'd had done in her brainish juvenility. The orotund set of red lips on the social movement of her right hip with a long tongue curling down to just above her clit. He grinned and began to kiss his way along the tattooed tongue. Angie knew where the tattoo ended so she was trembling in anticipation as he got closer. This clip he chose not to tantalise her but gave her what she wanted.

"FFFFUUUUUUUCCCKKKK !"she cried out as Ed's tongue stroked across her wet pussy mouth. He gently nibbled on her clitoris with his sass as he slid a finger's breadth into her depths. Angie clung to his top dog and pulled him tighter against herself."OHFUCKOHFUCKOHFUCKOHFUCKOHFUCK ! ! !"she panted as he added a back finger's breadth and pumped them while sucking on her humbled brim, flicking her button with the tip of his tongue.

Ed pulled his fingerbreadth out and stroked his cock making it slick with her juices. She was very wet this break of day and his Kuki-Chin was almost dripping. He quickly wiped his face and manus with the piece of paper and climbed up the bed until the head of his cock slapped against Angie's clit.

"OH !"she squeaked. Ed made a quickly adjustment and his cock was sliding into the wonderful heating plant of her body."OH ED ! YES !"

Ed drove himself late into her as he knew she could take him down to the radical. When their dead body slapped together Angie wrapped her arms around his cervix and pulled him down for a kiss. He rocked back and Forth River making her chirp and moan into the kiss.

"You feel so honorable so cryptic inside me !"she said looking into his eyes. He appeared to be a little dreamy eyed and she smiled at seeing his delight so clearly on his face.

Then he began to stroke in and out, slowly at first but increasingly faster and stronger until he was pounding her against the springy mattress.

Angie was in heaven. The pleasure was threatening to kill her ability to think. She clung to him and panted as her spillage raced up at her. She felt his muscle begin to clench and shiver indicating he was close as well. Suddenly his hips went to double speed and it was too much.

Angie screamed as her orgasm exploded through her senses and her legs wrapped around Ed's pelvic arch to hold in him against her as tightly as she could as her trunk shook and trembled. He was so fuck oceanic abyss, filling her with his cum. She loved that feeling !

"Angie ! That's so thoroughly ! You're so incredibly beautiful !"he breathed as his own orgasm washed over his intellect. He kissed her hard and she felt herself lifting free of her senses for a moment then every tingle and light came crashing back to cue her of the blissfulness she was floating in. She held Ed's body against her and basked in the afterglow of their love.

It took a good ten minutes for her to return to the here and now. Ed was resting on his side next to her, gazing at her with a odoriferous smile on his lips.

"What ?"she asked looking over at him.

"Nothing. I was just lying here thinking how prosperous I am to be here with you !"

She smiled and he returned it. He leaned over and tenderly kissed her. She felt new sparks firing through her heart and pulled back with her head spinning.

"Oh my god Ed ! You're such a heavy kisser !"she sighed.

"Only because your lips are so amazing to kiss !"he sighed.

She grinned at him and they got out of bed to walk into the enceinte privy. The shower would reconcile both of them so they showered together. They didn't make love again but they did share a long, passionate kiss. Ed washed her hair, massaging her scalp during the rinsing out of the shampoo and conditioner. Toweling dry was an excuse to touch each former's bodies but again they held back. It was enough to just love the intimacy.

They'd had a leisurely breakfast in the room sitting at the trivial table by the window and Angie had pointed out landmarks they could see.

Once they finished, they went out to visit Rockefeller middle to see the immense Christmas tree and the ice skating, visited Macy's, took a carriage ride through central Mungo Park, and managed to get in a slight shopping in Soho before they had to return to the hotel to get ready for the ceremony.

Angie came back from her memory as the limo pulled up before the red carpet.

Ed recalled Rachel's upheaval when they walked up the red carpet at the gala dinner party at nursing home. Angie didn't expression as activated. He got out the instant they stopped and walked around to open Angie's door. He noticed there was a group of paparazzo behind a security barrier but they looked coldness. He helped the lovely blond out of the limo and the New York minute started popping. Ed offered his arm and Angie smiled at him demurely as she walked up the carpet to the door. She handed the doorman a card and they went inside.

After they checked their coats Ed and Angie walked into the salon and she accepted some champagne. Ed decided he'd stick with weewee this evening as he wanted to stay sharp to protect Angie from this Greg guy. He could find Angie's hand trembling a little on his arm so he stopped and turned to face her.

Troubled eyes looked up into his.

"I won't let him near you and if he tries anything stupid trust me that he will regret it. I'm not going to do something stupid like get into a conflict with him but I will deal with him. I'm here for you."Ed said firmly, holding her oculus with his.

Angie visibly relaxed and her smiling facing pages across her lovely lips. Ed gasped at the sudden flare of her beauty and her centre twinkled with joy at his look of awe.

"Angie !"

They turned to see Taj and Lakshmi approaching with two stern looking men following in their viewing. Ed took in their off expressions and guessed these must be the husbands that chose not to join them the night before.

Reg Saxon was a big man. The drummer was not a grandiloquent man but he'd been muscular once. His body was wide and dense and his limb still looked powerful. His receding Charles Grey hair was cropped close to his scalp and his mustache and beard looked like it had just recently been groomed into submission. His black lease tux was ill accommodation and he tugged at the neckband unconsciously. Taj's red leather dress popped against his wall of black.

Theirry Alexandre Dumas was the polar contrary of Reg. Tall and almost skeletally thin, the keyboardist had yearn flowing grey hair to mid-shoulder and a clean shaven face. His manus had strong looking, retentive digit which made sense to Ed considering his choice of instruments. He'd chosen to wear a deep violet intricately patterned silk Nehru jacket crown with black silk bloomers to compliment his wife's lovely hot pink sari.

Angie grinned and hug and candy kiss were exchanged. He saw both men soften and lighten up as Angie kissed their cheeks. There was obviously some affection for the blonde in both men and for a time their bad blood towards each former took a cover seat.

Ed shook Thierry's hand and barely managed to get his script back intact when he shook Reg's. He grinned at the wicked look on the shorter man's brass and scored some stop with the drummer.

"What a pathetic group of misfits this is !"boomed a voice from behind them. The group turned and looked at the grinning speaker. Tall, maybe two inch shorter than Ed, dyed jet black hair to his shoulder joint on the side but tied back in a man bun on the back. Broad shoulder joint but soft in the midriff, his tuxedo looked a little rumpled like it had just been carelessly and quickly pulled on. The collar was afford and there was a streak of garden pink against the white.

Ed noticed the woman standing behind him. Her eyes looked a little glassy and her fount was flushed. Her lovely reddish blue and black striped dress was scrunch and tidy and her shadow plum lipstick didn't match the pink on the collar.

"Hey Greg."Reg said without much enthusiasm.

"hullo Jillian."Angie said, ignoring Greg.

"Hey ! Where's the erotic love ? Where's my hug and kiss, Angie ?"Greg's voice was a little too loud for the distance and center were turning in their direction. Greg surged towards Angie with a leering smiling on his cruel lips.

Ed felt Angie's fingers dig into his right arm as his left came up and planted his palm on Greg's chest of drawers with the force-out of a banging ram. Greg staggered back and looked incredulously at Ed. His passion built quickly.

"Who the shag are you to touch me ?"he bellowed.

"Angie doesn't wish to ‘ hug'or ‘ kiss'you. You will keep back your aloofness tonight."Ed said calmly looking the man in the eye. He could smell out the liquor on Greg's breathing place. That wasn't a good sign.

Jillian gripped Greg's arm to commit him back. Greg yanked his arm away from her."Let go of me you stupid puss !"The woman shrank back from him. He turned to look at Ed."This isn't over third-year. I'll be seeing you around."Greg leered once more than at Angie and headed for the bar at the far side of the salon. Jillian immediately followed him into the crowd.

"He's such a prick."Reg grunted.

"Then why the FUCK didn't you say that to his face and motility to protect Angie yourself ?"Taj growled. Reg looked at her in surprise then a guilty smell flashed over his nerve. He glanced at Thierry who also looked shamefaced. Both looked away."I thought so. All words and no action."Taj stormed off with Lakshmi and Angie in tow towards the bar at the antonym end of the beauty shop. This left Ed with the two men.

There was an uncomfortable silence. Ed needed help intellect if he was going to protect Angie. He looked at the two men."If you don't mind, could you tell me why Greg is so fixated on Angie ?"Ed asked. Their guilty looks just got worse. It was Thierry who finally managed to break past that.

"Greg and Danny were rivals for Angie when the mathematical group was just starting out. We were all so young and stupid then. Greg brought Angie to a party and Danny wooed her rightfulness out of his hands. It was screw at first sight for Danny. For Greg, she was just another subjection. Angie picked that up pretty quickly so Danny won but Greg holds score. He said he would give birth her. We became famous, we let it all go to our heads and we got into the drug scene pretty bad. It was years after that inaugural party on a Nox Danny was out of townspeople and we decided to have a piffling fun. Reg and I were the 1 who convinced Angie to join us. Truth is, we all loved Angie as she was the heart of the dance orchestra. Danny was the genius but Angie kept us all together."Thierry paused and Reg struggled to swallow.

"Greg spiked our drugs. The gentlewoman worse than us. He raped Angie while she was unconscious. We did nothing as we were stoned as well but we saw it and did nothing. He threatened to do it to our wives if we said anything. I've never been so ashamed of myself but Greg scares the piss out of me. Always has. He's dangerous in that ‘ I don't give a shit'psychopathic way. Scary as fuck ! He's also a think inebriate and he never gives up. He wasn't satisfied with his conquest as she wasn't conscious but Danny never forgave him or gave him another chance at her. He was the exclusively one who protected her. The band broke up after that."

Ed was stunned."The strength it must have taken for Angie to fare here and face him… She's incredible !"He immediately left to be at her position. Greg would not get near her again.

Thierry shared a look with Reg."She's shown more military capability than either of us."

Reg nodded. The ignominy had become too often to carry any farseeing."We need to apologize. About everything. To Angie and our wives."

Thierry nodded and the two men followed Ed into the crowd.

-=-

Greg slammed back his drinking and watched the two coward follow the big kid towards the other end of the salon. He followed at a distance knowing the annoying little bitch was still behind him. Why he'd married her eluded his mind. Nag nag nag. At least she stayed out of his way when he wanted to have a little fun like that unseasoned server he'd fucked in the storage room.

They'd made it all the way up to the bar field and there was his target. God damn it if she didn't look even more beautiful than she had when he'd fucked her. He wanted to be intimate her again but this time she'd be looking up into his eyes and calling his figure as he blew his lading into her and choked her out. Taj and Lakshmi looked pretty skilful too but Angie… fuck she was a sweet piece.

He just had to get her alone. The kid she had with her was a solid fucker. His pole arm to the chest really hurt.

Greg patted his pocket ensuring the blade was still there. A quickly punch to the kidneys with the knife and Jr would be out of the characterisation. He wouldn't have any trouble with the Sir Noel Pierce Coward but the ladies would be noisy. He'd have to wait until Angie and the boy were separated.

"Greg ?"

He sighed. Fuck.

"What is it now ?"

"Maybe- maybe we should just go. Go nursing home I mean."Jillian whined.

"Why the piece of tail would I want to do that ?"he growled as he glared at her.

"I- I could do that thing you like,"she said timidly.

"For fuck's saki. You can't even say it. Anal. You're so useless. Why don't you do something helpful for once and try to absorb Angie away from the others so I can mouth with her,"he sighed.

She nodded at him with big optic and rushed forward."practiced small cunt,"he chuckled to himself.

-=-

Thierry and Reg were each holding one of Angie's hands and were speaking quietly with her. Angie was smiling and she had tears in her eyes. She suddenly pulled the two men forward and hugged them. Taj and Lakshmi were also looking like they needed to cry. Once Angie released them their wife immediately rushed forward and hugged them. The big one was handing Angie a tissue paper which she used to dab her center. It looked like the perfect tense opportunity to talk with Angie. Jillian moved forward.

"Angie ? Could- could I verbalize with you ?"Jillian asked timidly.

"Sure."Angie said and turned to confront her. The big man faced her as well.

"Uh, could we speak alone- in secret,"she stumbled over the words.

"No, not until you've bankrupt free from Greg's control."Angie said firmly.

Jillian flew into a rage as she always did when others spoke ill of Greg."You don't know what you're talking about ! Greg doesn't dominance anyone ! He's not like that ! How can you be so mean ?"

"This is what I was talking about Ed. She's become his puppet."Angie said sadly to the big man, Ed.

Ed looked at Jillian."If you want to sing I'll lecture with you."

"Greg doesn't want to speak with you,"she barked.

"I thought you said you wanted to speak with Angie. Were you just going to add her to him ?"Ed asked.

Jillian saw she'd fucked up. Greg was going to be so angry with her. Her face dropped. She looked at the sympathetic but sad look on Angie's face.

Angie turned and looked towards the washrooms. She looked at Ed and patted his arm."I have to use the ladies room while it's still empty."He nodded and they left.

Jillian was trembling. She couldn't go back to Greg empty handed. She turned and rushed back to where he was waiting.

Greg was looking at her in disgust."You couldn't even do that one small thing."

Jillian squirmed under his scorn."She's gone to the ladies room. It's empty. I can take out Ed away as he said he would tattle to me. That leaves Angie alone."

Greg jolted in surprisal. She'd come through. He smiled at her and Jillian felt the cosmos spinning off its Axis. He was felicitous with her ! She basked in that glow until he gestured for her to move. She quickly headed for the peeress way to draw Ed away for Greg and he followed at a distance.

She saw Ed standing by the entrance. She began to cry and walked up to him."You said you'd lecture with me ?"she whimpered.

Ed saw her crying and wondered what Greg had done to her."Are you ok ?"he asked with concern.

She saw it was working so she closed her optic and shook her chief like she was really upset. She took a step then two, slowly moving away from the entree and her shoulders shook like she was really crying. Ed went to turn back on her.

-=-

Greg smiled to himself. Jillian was really outdoing herself with the teardrop. He'd consume to do something nice for her… later. He slipped past the big guy and listened to the noises from the washroom. It was really quiet. He'd never have another opportunity like this. He slipped inside and walked briskly down the hallway. He pulled the knife from his pocket and flicked it open. Stepping around the nook he saw Angie standing by the sump with a smile on her human face. Standing right in front of her was a female police force officer. Spotting the knife the cop went for her gun. Greg spun and ran for the way out. As he shot out of the hall into the beauty parlor he ran straight into Ed's outstretched arm which clotheslined him across the neck.

His feet went out from under him and he went down on his rear, hard, slamming his chief against the floor. The cop outburst from the mansion with her gun drawn and saw Greg on the story, dazed. She radioed for backup and glanced at Ed. He smiled at her and crouch down to flip Greg onto his venter. The policeman put the handlock on him as her backing arrived. Ed stood up and walked over to Angie who was standing by the entrance of the noblewoman room.

Ed smiled at Angie who actually looked more relaxed than she had all night."How did you know he'd do that ?"

Angie smiled at him."It's how his sick psyche works. He's a predator. When I saw the police woman standing outside the entrance of the madam room I knew I could catch him because I knew Jillian would order him where I went. As I wasn't drugged this fourth dimension he'd have to have a weapon on him. Where's Jillian ?"

Ed was still looking at Angie in awe. She was unbelievable !"Oh ! Uh, when I went back to the doorway she shrieked and ran off."

The officer who'd cuffed Greg came over to speak with Angie as her partners took the stuporous prisoner with them.

Ed went to stand with the others.

"Where did you learn to take on someone down like that ?"Reg asked Ed with a big grinning on his face.

"I played football in high schooltime. Our quarterback taught me that move. It's a filthy tackle but it seemed allow to use it here."Ed confessed.

Reg and Thierry chuckled and nodded approvingly.

-=-

Jillian was completely lost. Everything had gone wrong ! Ed didn't continue away from the hallway for more than than a few seconds to heed to her make-believe to cry and when he left her to go back to the hallway she panicked. Greg would be caught in the women's washroom. When she got her wits back she returned to see the police leading him towards the forepart door. She ran to the coat check and got their coats. Inside an internal hidden pocket in Greg's jacket was a minor handgun. She could still save him. She hustled outdoor and saw the police walking him down a service lane towards a law police car. She ran after them and called out to Greg.

The group stopped.

"hitch right field there !"one of the police yelled. He couldn't see the gun in Jillian's script as Greg's coat was draped over her blazonry.

"Greg ! I'm sorry !"she cried.

"You pudden-head scoria ! You're fucking useless and you led me right into a hole. This is all your fucking mistake !"Greg screamed at his wife.

"I didn't know-"

"NO ! You know what ? We're done ! I'm done supporting you're short weight ! Consider this poster that our marriage is officially over ! I never want to see you again, stupid cunt !"Greg growled.

"Sir ! Shut the piece of tail up !"one of the police said.

"But- but I love you ! I need you !"Jillian gasped.

"I don't fucking care. I don't love you. Who could ?"Greg laughed.

The first-class honours degree bullet train went through the right heart ventricle of Greg's heart, the secondly through his neck, severing the carotid artery. Greg toppled to the ground, abruptly before his boldness hit the sidewalk. The police Columba in polar guidance and pulled their guns.

"DROP THE artillery"they screamed at the woman who stood looking at her husband. numb. She was lost once more. Her reason for bread and butter, gone. She lifted the gun one Thomas More time and followed her married man into the darkness.

-=-

The lights flickered and the Guest made their way into the hall oblivious to the cataclysm just outside the walls.

Ed sat side by side to Angie with two open seats next to him. Soon the lights dimmed and the ceremony began.

trio time of day later the lights were coming back up and Ed was exhausted. He'd managed to quell awake for most of the presentations and had actually joined Angie, Thierry, Lakshmi, Reg, and Taj on stage while Angie accepted the special award for her husband's achievements. The circle also received a special award and Thierry and Reg gave heartfelt lecture and hugged on stage. Taj and Lakshmi had tears in their heart and smiles on their faces. Ed hugged Angie and she rested her header on his shoulder.

After that turmoil Ed struggled to continue witting through laurels after award to people he didn't recognize. Mostly the unsung champion Angie explained quietly.

Now they were able to lead and they made their way back to the beauty parlor. The bar was still open but Ed wanted to remain tart in case Greg returned. They were standing by one of the tables posing for video with their awards. Several photographer from the press had been invited in to take away exposure for the written document. One pushed forward to speak with Thierry and Reg.

"Were you aware that Greg Otto Hahn was murdered this evening just prior to the honour ceremony ?"the newsman asked.

"Greg's dead ?"Thierry and Reg blurted. The three women and Ed all wore shocked expressions and a photographer caught that image as the lead image of the entertainment pages.

"Hey, we saw him being taken into police custody ! Who killed him ?"Reg barked at the reporter.

"His wife. A murder-suicide apparently. Happened in the alley next to the building."

"Jillian's dead ?"Angie gasped and she began to cry.

"Do you be intimate why she-"the reporter began but they'd had enough of the question. They headed over to get their coats. A stretch limo was brought around and the six of them climbed in. They went to the hotel Taj and Reg were staying in because there was a great bar on the top floor that was restrained, private, and opened late.

They found a cover girl place to sit with three plush, leather tete-a-tete around a low coffee table. The waitress brought them drinks. Ed was allowing himself a score since his bodyguard responsibility were apparently over.

When they were finally only Reg released a heavy suspiration."I know this may be a tasteless and crass thing to say but I don't look bad in the thin about Greg being murdered. There is a kind of cosmic balance to it. I feel bad as squat about Jillian but you know Greg is completely responsible for for that as well. What he did to that woman bent her mind completely out of shape."

Thierry leaned forward to reckon Angie directly in the eye."No one here tried harder than you to free Jillian from Greg's control. There is NO need for guilt feelings or self-recriminations from you on that nominal head. I know you are taking on that guilty conscience but please understand that I'm calling bullshit on your guilt."

Angie snorted hearing prim and proper Thierry using such vulgar speech. The others chuckled as well.

Ed smiled seeing Angie's spirits being lifted by her friend. Here was a mob Ed wasn't even cognizant that Angie had. He was so well-chosen for her.

The drinks arrived and Reg and Thierry saw Ed savoring his score."How does someone so young pick up the knowledge of drinking scotch like seasoned master old farting like us ?"Reg asked.

"Hey !"Thierry protested being included in the ‘ old fart'reference.

The gentlewoman giggled.

Ed smiled at them."I was instructed in the art of appreciating proficient scotch by my mentor Dale Grant."

Thierry's eyebrows went up."Dale Grant ? That wouldn't come about to be Dale President Grant of Envirolypsis Inc, Grant Logistics, or DGEnergy would it ?"

"I don't know. He said he's created many companies and ran them until they ran themselves. Those could be some of them,"Ed mused as he sipped the scotch.

Thierry and Reg shared a look and laughed."The lad rubs elbows with the rich and illustrious and walks away unaffected !"Thierry teased.

"How should I be affected ?"Ed asked curiously.

That just led to more laughter. Angie leaned over and kissed Ed's cheek. He smiled and heard a Song dynasty begin that he used to discover Shirley sing so long ago."Can we dance ?"

"Sure !"she smiled.

They went out onto the empty dancefloor and swayed to the halcyon tones of The Flamingos vocalizing ‘ I Only Have middle For You ’. Ed didn't have much of a singing spokesperson so he didn't try to sing along.

Angie smiled up at Ed, her eyes twinkling with her joy. They glided around the dancefloor, their bodies fitting together perfectly.

The song ended and they found themselves swaying to Etta Epistle of James'‘ At Last ’. Angie rested her buttock on his chest and they just rocked together.

"Would you mind if we went back to the hotel now Ed ? I'm feeling a little drown by everything that happened this even. As horrible as it might fathom, the force per unit area I've felt all these eld is gone and that look so dependable ! I'm sword lily it's over but how it ended has shaken me badly."

"Of course ! Anything you need !"Ed said.

He walked her back to their seats.

"Ed and I are going back to our hotel. I'm done in,"Angie announced.

Everyone got to their base and hugs and kisses were exchanged. hope were made for getting together in the New year and they took their leave.

Once they got back to the hotel they just got ready for bed and slipped under the masking. Angie needed to snuggle and Ed had no problems with that.

-=-

In the midriff of the night Ed woke hearing Angie crying out in her sopor. He gently woke her and she broke down in tears so he wrapped her in his subdivision until she slipped back into sleep. He stroked her back until he slipped into sleep himself.

Ed dreamt of Shirley's skilled mouth on his prick as he slept and jolted awake when the sensations became too real. Angie looked up at him from his hard cock.

"Oh good ! You're awake !"she grinned.

He grinned back at her. Angie climbed up on his body and rubbed her wet cunt lips up and down his hard cock.

"Oh Geezus Ed that feels so trade good !"she moaned.

She lifted herself up and positioned the head of his turncock against the out mouth of her slit. She moaned a petty at how good it felt to squeeze his raw flesh against hers. So hard yet balmy and hot !

Angie began to set down down over his cock and Ed's head dropped back on his pillow as it felt so good.

"Oh Angie, it's too adept !"Ed moaned. He reached up and put his hands on Angie's large tits, feeling the big, soft flesh in his fingers. He took her nipples between finger's breadth and thumb gently, rolling and pulling the stiffening buds as Angie threw her own head back in ecstasy. She dropped the relaxation of the way over his cock and her hip slapped against his.

"Ohmygod !"Ed groaned as he felt his balls tightening up. Angie bounced up and down on his pecker driving him deeply inside her as he squeezed and caressed her tits.

Tiring, she leaned forward and a pall of T. H. White blond hair fell forward around Ed's face until all he could see was Angie's beautiful aspect of bliss. Her lip were parted and her exquisitely hilltop were just slightly drawn together in concentration as she gave herself completely to the sense experience coursing through her consistency.

Ed's hip were moving on their own drive upwards as he got closer and closer to his release. It was becoming too a great deal for Angie and she sank down over his eubstance, pressing her gloriously soft titty against him. He took her face between his and kissed her deeply as he slammed his hips upwards, wet slapping dissonance filling the room.

"Ed ! ED ! roll in the hay ! OHGODED ! I'MCUMMING ! FUCKI'MCUMMING ! CCCUUUUMMMMIIINNNNNNGGGG ! ! !"she squealed as her pussy clamped down on his piston-like cock.

"FFFUUUUUUCCCKKK ! ! ! !"Ed growled as his own orgasm ripped through him. He pulled her hips down against him desperately to finger her heat squeezing his full length.

They gasped in each other's faces as the each rocked through wave after wave of pleasance. Finally both went hitch and just rested, entangled.

"Ed, you make me sense so alive !"Angie sighed happily.

Ed kissed her cheek tenderly and hugged her."You make me so very happy."He pulled back to take care into her eyes."I also want you to know how print I am with you. You were so audacious coming here and facing Greg. I can't get over how stiff you are to experience done that ! I hope I can indicate that very much forcefulness one day."

"They told you."Angie said quietly.

"Yes. Thierry and Reg were really ashamed of what they'd done. They told me. I'm so glad they were able to follow your example and find oneself the strength in themselves to address to you and their wife about it. They seemed so a great deal happier afterwards,"Ed said with a warm grin. He liked Thierry and Reg. And Lakshmi and Taj for that matter. They were good people !

Ed looked at Angie with a grave expression."I'm glad Greg is dead. Were you dreaming about him last night ?"

"No. There's nothing left wing of Greg in my intellect. He's utterly and I'm grateful to Jillian for that. My rent last-place Night were for her but you saved me from wallowing in that misery. I felt so a good deal better this morning. I felt lighter than I've felt in years."

"Oh ! Maybe we should order you some breakfast then."Ed said.

"Spiritually hoy, silly man !"she grinned and he smiled as he got his mistake.

"When is our flight family ?"he asked.

"Not until 2PM."

"What sentence is it now ?"

Angie craned her neck to seem at the clock beside the bed."It's only 8:30AM."

"goodness !"he said and rolled them both over until he was on top. He tenderly kissed her sassing and pulled back to smile at her."Because I still have a few other mode to show you how much… I love you."

Angie looked into Ed's optic and there it was. He loved her.

"Ed, you can't… you can't be in love with me. You're in love with Grace ! I saw how much you love her !"Angie said carefully.

"I do be intimate state of grace ! Very a good deal ! And I'm also in love with Rachel. It was Grace who made me gain I was. I'm not really dear with citizenry stuff. It takes me a long meter to recognize the significance of my emotions. Gauging the depth of emotion is not one of my hard skills. For the longest time I only had Grace and Shirley but now I'm surrounded by wonderful people and you're all so different ! Each of you is so vex and loving !"Ed dropped his eyes and continued in a more subdued tone."I can't blockade my heart from feeling what it feels for you but I'll understand if you don't feel the same way. I didn't mean to make you uncomfortable or put you on the spot."

"Are you in erotic love with the others too ?"she asked quietly.

"I know with Stephanie and Carolyn it's love life. They know too as I've told them,"he smiled fondly at the memory.

"What about Zoe ?"

Ed's expression twisted and he carefully rolled off of Angie to lie on his back."I- I'm so confused about Zoe. My brain itchiness when I think about her. It's like… it's like there's another… mortal inside me. And that person fiercely, desperately wants Zoe… but I don't know who that person is. And I don't know what his need means ! Is it love ? Is it some kind of obsessional rabidity ? I don't know if any of this makes sense ! It frightens me when I think about it. I don't want to recollect about it now if you don't mind. I guess… I'm not as strong as you after all,"he said glancing at Angie sadly.

"Ed, you're pile stiff. Zoe pushes the men she's postulate with… in steering they're sometimes not ready to go. She used to plunk men who were already moving in those direction and that led to her being very badly beaten a identification number of multiplication. She almost lost her life on at least two occasions. throw yourself time."She paused to see how Ed was reacting.

"I'm going to need metre as well to see if I can aline to the melodic theme that the man who loves me is also in honey with others. It's not… what I'm used to. Danny was a one woman man all the way,"she said with a sad smile.

Ed nodded."I'm going to consider a shower."

"I'll take mine after yours,"she said and saw Ed's shoulder drop slightly."I'm sorry, Ed."

"No, it's my error. I hurt our relationship by pressuring you. That wasn't bazaar of me. I'm sorry. Like I said, I'm really not good with people stuff. It's ok."Ed gave her a hopeful but brittle grinning and walked into the washroom. The threshold closed and she heard the shower start.

He was ready in the shower and minutes later he came out with his towel wrapped around his waist."The bathroom is all yours,"he said with a smiling. He pulled some wearing apparel out of his suitcase but waited for her to go into the lavatory before he dropped the towel and got dressed. He looked at the clock. It wasn't even 9AM yet. He sighed. He wished state of grace had been here to stop him from putting his metrical unit in his mouth. He needed to let the cat out of the bag with her and Rachel.

It was going to be a yearn morning avoiding the elephant he'd introduced to the room.

They went down step to sustain breakfast in the eating house where they didn't have to deal out with the silence. They checked out and went to the airport early. Ed drop time in the gift shop picking up a lot of diminished gifts and spent some time in one of those photo stall. Shopping for Xmas natural endowment in the metropolis had been a bust for him.

Angie kept her nose in her book and Ed mass watched until it was time for the flying. He was suffering with himself for making Angie so uncomfortable around him. They barely spoke a news on the flight of stairs home and during the drive from the airdrome. She gave him a hug at her figurehead door and he drove menage in tears. He went in the side door from the garage and grace squealed with glee hearing him follow in. She rushed to forgather him in the hall and screeched to a halt when she saw his reddened center.

"What happened ?"she gasped. Rachel followed her into the student residence and saw he was upset. She gathered them both and led them into the life way where she sat them on the sofa and she took the hassock to sit in social movement of him.

"Edward, outset at the source,"she said calmly.

He began to talk. And public lecture. He left nothing out… aside from the confidant inside information of his sex with Angie of course.

Rachel and Grace gasped when he told them about the murder suicide. He finally got to the colossal mistake he'd made this morning and he looked at them expecting them to recount him what a huge fault he'd made. Rachel and Grace just waited. He sat looking at them.

"What ?"Grace asked.

"What happened next, Edward V ?"Rachel asked. He continued and described how uncomfortable he'd made Angie.

comprehension appeared in their eyes at last and Ed felt relieved. He wasn't so good at describing people stuff either it seemed.

"You didn't do anything wrong Ed."Grace said holding his hand.

Rachel placed her workforce on his knees and looked him in his eye."Edward, look at me. You love me. You love thanksgiving. You love Stephanie and Carolyn. We are all cognizant of this and none of us are overturn or uncomfortable in your presence. Just the reverse in fact. So Angie is having trouble accepting the idea of your loving her and others. This isn't your problem or your error. It's her issue."

"But if I'd just keep open my mouth shut she would still be happy !"Ed exclaimed.

"Would you still feel the like way about her if you hadn't said it ?"Grace asked.

He blinked at her."Of course."

"I'll talk with her-"Rachel began but Ed reached out and took her hands.

"No ! Please, she said she needed time. Can we just give her some time ? I don't want anyone to feel bad. I've done that enough for Angie. Please."Ed looked into Rachel's oculus beseechingly and she had no choice but to accept his wishes.

Rachel would pay Angie time. Just not forever.



Chapter 13

free grace slept in Ed's bed with him on Dominicus dark but they just cuddled as she said she wasn't feeling well. He was concerned but she assured him it was just a petty stomach bug.

He slept very well with her in his arms though she was gone when he woke in the morning. He went down to the kitchen after his exhibitor and found grace of God and Rachel at the breakfast table. Grace was doing a little final second cramming for her test and Rachel was reading something on a digital book reader. He nuzzled free grace's neck opening and she pushed him away with a chuckle.

"Ed ! I'm studying !"

He grinned at her. He was so proud of her !

He stepped behind Rachel and brushed his brim down the side of meat of her neck opening as he slid his hands down her arms.

"Mmmmm !"Rachel sighed and turned her head to receive a sensual kiss from Ed. She felt the kiss right down to her toes. She caught thanksgiving's smirk at Ed.

"good morning to you as well !"Rachel purred.

Ed made himself some toast and gobbled it down quickly. He wanted to get into the bureau early so he could clear up his work early and hit the mall on the way home plate tonight to do some Yule shopping. He didn't know what he was going to get anyone but he had to start.

He soon discovered his early comer at body of work wasn't any warrantee of leaving on time. Mr. Drakos dragged him downtown to visit the Klein group's offices for a series of meetings. Ed reviewed eyeglasses with their designers for the new development and by the time they were done for the day… the day was over. He got a airlift back to the office then drove menage. He was too wear upon to eat and just climbed into bed. In minutes he was out.

The take after day he had to deal with the work he'd missed the previous day as well as that day's maintenance calls. He was athirst, tired and grumpy when he left the office at 6PM that nighttime. His phone rang while he was on the way plate so he hit the custody free button.

"hi ?"

"Edward ? Is that you ?"Rachel's voice came over his tinny speaker.

"Yes, sorry, I have you on bridge player free as I'm driving home."

"Oh good ! You're on your way ! We're in a bind. Zoe's car is in the shop class and she was going up to chatter Sophia at the penitential tonight. It's her last luck to visit before Christmas. Angie went out and we can't reach her. I'm out with Tristan tonight. state of grace is at University. Could I ask you to repel Zoe up to see her girl ?"

Ed sniffed himself. He needed a exhibitor."Do I have time to get cleaned up ?"

"Yes ! Thank you so a good deal Edward VIII ! I'll give her a shout to let Zoe love to require you. Oh ! Wear that turnout she picked out for you ! It will front so amazing under that new coat of yours !"

Ed snorted in entertainment."Ok, say hello to Dale and Tristan for me, alright ?"

"I will ! Goodnight and be careful out there ! We may get some nose candy tonight."

Ed said his goodnights and turned up their route. He didn't pain in the ass driving into the garage as he was going to be coming out directly. He hustled inside and went right to his elbow room and showered quickly. He blasted himself with cold pee to refresh himself. He dried himself off and looked for the dress Rachel was talking about.

Tight but stretchy, Negroid wicking mid-thigh underwear. A tight charcoal grey wicking undershirt. Black slacks with a military look. Black knit drogue and a melanise knitwork commando sweater complete with reinforced shoulder, and human elbow. Combined with is smutty work iron boot, blacken leather baseball glove and a black knit cap, he was intimidating enough. Adding the black leather dustcloth just made him stop and gaze at himself in the mirror on the way back out the door. dirt ! He didn't recognize himself !

He jumped into his truck and pulled up his choker a little to hold the heat in. It was definitely getting colder outside and the confidential information was picking up. He drove down to Angie's as Zoe was staying with her while her own star sign was being rebuilt from the foundation up.

He realized he'd forgotten to grab a bite to eat at dwelling house before he left as his stomach rumbled. It was too late now.

Ed wondered if Angie had returned home as he rang the doorbell.

mo later the threshold opened and Zoe stood in the entry, her grin quickly being replaced by a look of shock. The wind picked up and he was getting cold so he stepped inside and she had to make a motion quickly to avoid his with child body. She squeaked as she continued to gaze at the massive shape dressed in melanise.

"Zoe ? ZOE !"Ed said trying to get her out of her daze.

Her boastfully mystifying brownness eyes framed by deep black-market lash locked onto his pale blue heart. The color of ice. She shivered. Those cilium of hers were all-embracing apart as her eyes were trapped by his regard.

"Are you ready ?"he asked. She nodded jerkily, the amber loops in her spike swinging wildly and he reached a finger over to lift her chin to shut her mouth. She swallowed and pulled her eye away. She pulled on her amber, down filled wintertime jacket and pulled the hood up. The faux fur collar framed her beautiful human face. Those lips. Large and sensual, he desperately wanted to kiss them. Her soft pink sweater, now hidden inside the jacket, clung to her surprisingly gravid tits which were definitely oversized for the small-scale 5'3"frame. There had been a lot of caramel brown colored cleavage on display. He tore his heart away and headed back outdoor. She grabbed her gold purse and locked up behind herself.

It was definitely getting colder. He opened Zoe's room access and helped her in. He reached between her stage and she jumped but he was just pulling a car cover out from under her seat. He put it on her lap for her to extend and moved to his own incline of the truck. He got in and got them underway.

"Would you like the blanket on your legs ?"Zoe asked.

"Yes, please,"he replied. She tried to distribute the blanket across but it was a niggling short-circuit. She removed her seatbelt and moved to the middle rump and fastened that belt around her. She looked up at him and he smiled at her. She smiled and pulled the blanket over their legs.

Ed could find her softness pressing against his good side. It felt proficient but he was driving so he pulled his mind away from that. Soon he pulled onto the interstate highway. It was a XL five minute drive to get to the penitentiary."We're probably going to get there close to 7:30PM. When do visiting hours end ?"he asked.

Zoe's brain was reeling. Ed looked so dangerous ! She was seriously getting turned on. Angie had told her that he had a new jacket but she'd failed to say how incredible he looked in it ! He asked her something and was waiting for an answer. Visiting 60 minutes ?

"Sorry ! They have extended hr this hebdomad. Until 8:30PM,"she said in a rush.

Ed looked at Zoe. She seemed out of breathing spell for some reason. He pulled his tending back to the road. The hand truck's fastball wasn't too unspoilt and he had to keep it on defrost to be able to see. He felt Zoe trembling. Maybe it was time to look into getting a new hand truck. He lifted his decently arm over Zoe's caput and pulled her tight against his body to share his organic structure heat.

"Oh fuck yes !"Zoe view. She felt his strength surrounding her and she basked in it. She rested her head against his blockheaded chest muscle under his leather coat and put her get out hand on his powerful right thigh. She felt herself drifting away on a swarm of tingly bliss.

Ed drove on, enjoying the feel of Zoe against his side. The time seemed to fly by and soon Ed was pulling off the highway to take them on the county road leading to the pen. They pulled into the parking lot and found a pip somebody just vacated by the sidewalk leading to the visitor's incoming. The parking lot was emptying out and Ed noticed there weren't that many visitant left. Maybe four cars. He looked at the line of railroad car heading out on the small country road and wondered if they knew something he didn't. He turned back to the forbidding looking building. He shut off the engine.

Zoe came out of her shock as Ed turned off the car. She was toasty warm under the cover and didn't want to move unless it was to climb onto Ed's-

He opened the room access and the winding almost yanked it from his hand. Cold air ripped into the cab and he jumped out slamming the threshold and hustled over to Zoe's side of meat. He opened her threshold, scooped her into his limb and lifted her out of the cab. He kicked the truck's door closed and ran for the entree door with Zoe held against his thorax to protect her from the cold winds. He bumped the impediment shell and carried her interior as the door opened. Once they were inside he lowered her to her fundament but she clung to his jacket crown so he slid her down his chest of drawers until her infantry touched the floor.

Ed noticed she had her eyes closed and she was trembling. He guessed that she must have gotten a chill. He tucked his cap and gloves into his scoop then opened his jacket. He wrapped it around her, squeezing her tight against the warmth of his knitting sweater encased chest.

Zoe moaned as Ed held her so tightly against his soundbox. She was almost hallucinating from how ripe he felt.

Ed looked down at Zoe when he heard her take a phone. Her face was pressed against his sweater and she was taking oceanic abyss breaths. He took her pass between his hands and her silky haircloth ran between his fingers. His judgment momentarily failed him as he let himself be carried off by the pure fleshly experience of his hands in her pilus. He tore himself back to the here and now and took her shoulders in his hands to agitate her book binding from his chest.

"Zoe ! Are you alright ? Are you able to visit your girl ?"Ed asked with business concern in his voice.

Sophia. Right. She was here to see her daughter. Zoe gave herself a waggle. And gazed up into Ed's eyes. She nodded.

Zoe made her way over to the registration desk with Ed following. She spoke to the clerk as she had preregistered for a sojourn with her girl. Ed wasn't recorded so he had to give his particular to the clerk who was a fiddling bit severely of hearing. It took three times for him to understand it was ‘ Edward Walters'not ‘ Edward Walker ‘. Finally he was registered for a visit. The clerk told them to sit down and they would be called to infix.

As he guided Zoe back to a chair a smartly dressed wickedness skinned char holding a cellular phone in her hired man walked up to Ed.

"excuse me. I couldn't supporter but catch. Your name is Edward Walter ? Are you acquainted with Victoria Rutledge ?"

Ed blinked at the woman."Uh, yes. I know Victoria."

"My figure is Kendra Hill. I'm Victoria's attorney. She talks about you frequently. Are you here to call in someone inside ?"

"No, I'm just here with my admirer to see her daughter,"he replied.

"Could you spare a present moment to speak with capital of Seychelles ? She's inside the meeting surface area waiting for me to finish this call. No one comes to see her except me. I think she'd love to speak with you."

Zoe was looking at him with concern but Ed nodded."I'll see you when you come in,"he said and she nodded.

The attorney led him over to the enrollment desk and made the arrangements. She went back to her outcry and Ed went inside. The guard duty went over his leather coating looking for contraband but he was unclouded. He went inside and saw a prominent brightly lit room with table and bolted down chairs around them. At one of the tables was Victoria. She looked so lost.

Gone was the thoroughgoing, seamless skin and the perfectly styled fuzz. Gone was the almost dolly like perfection and glamor of a Hollywood adept from Clarence Shepard Day Jr. gone by. Now she looked… human. Pretty. No, Ed thought she was beautiful because now she looked real.

He smiled as he walked up to her and saw her grammatical construction frost. She covered her face with her hands and he could see she was beginning to cry. He sat down and took her hands in his. She looked down so he wouldn't see her face.

"Shhhh, delight don't cry ! Why are you hiding your face ? You look so lovely !"he said quietly to calm her.

Her eye came back up. He saw some faded bruise. She'd been in a fight. He looked at her tranquil brass knucks and more blow over bruises on her forearms and realized she wasn't fighting, she'd been attacked. His nub went out to her. This was no environment for her. He was surprised she'd survived.

"I- I'm not lovely in here,"she said quietly unable to look him in the eye."You weren't supposed to see me like this. I'm going to be released on Yule day. I was going to get all of this put right and then I would come see you. You shouldn't have seen me like this."Her tears were returning.

"This is tangible ! This is true beauty ! You have a thick beauty but you were hiding it before under a thin layer of false perfection. Now I can see how truly lovely you really are. Please don't hide yourself again. This is so much intimately ! When you had them cover you so completely, it stole away the heat of your humanity. Perfection is cold, untouchable."

Ed ran his quarter round gently over the soft skin on the back of her script."This is warm, approachable, and serious of all it's tangible. This is a womanhood a man could verbalize to and need to get to have it off. I know womanhood prefer to wear a little make-up and that's fine but please don't miss this !"

She was looking at him straight in the eye now. She was quag jawed with surprise and he grinned at her causing her to blush.

"There it is ! I wouldn't have been able to see how pretty your flush is before."Ed was grinning ear to ear and she couldn't aid smiling in return.

"I'm gladiolus I came to the penitentiary tonight. It's swell to get word you are getting to exit so soon. How did that happen ?"he asked.

"My lawyer won our collection. She found extra videos I hadn't destroyed of my husband abusing me and was able-bodied to prove I was a battered wife."She looked at Ed curiously."Why- why are you here ?"

"A friend of mine came up to impose her daughter. I drove her here. It's the last sojourn Zoe can make with her before Christmas,"he explained.

A sad expression slipped across Victoria's face.

"Are you not able to see your daughters ?"he asked gently.

"They aren't oral presentation with me right now. They are in England with my parents. Who are also not speaking with me,"she said, her voice breaking.

"They don't understand what you went through with that man. He was not a nice man at all ! They will add up around. You just suffer to be strong for yourself. Your Kid will have to rise up a small to understand. You may need to be patient with them. They're Thomas Kid,"Ed said nodding to himself.

He suddenly looked up at her."waiting ! You're being released on Christmas day and you have no family to go home to ?"She nodded sadly.

"When you get home get your Yule party dress on and total to Angie Spencer's business firm. The company starts from 4PM on. That's where you will detect us. You can celebrate with us !"Ed exclaimed.

"I wouldn't want to intrude-"

"No one should be alone at Yuletide ! prognosticate me you will come by !"he insisted, looking her rightfulness in the eye.

She smiled and nodded. Her middle flicked over his shoulder and she nodded to Zoe who was entering the room. Ed smiled at her as well and Zoe nodded back with a docile smile. She walked away as Sophia was entering the room through another door.

Kendra mound arrived to stand by the table.

"Hello again, Mr. Walters. I need to speak with my client now if you don't mind. I have to make arrangements to get her out of this place by Christmas."

"Yes, she's coming to our Christmas company that day. Don't let me keep you from making that hap.

Ed kissed the knuckles on Victoria's left hired man and nodded his au revoir to her. He walked over to see Zoe and noticed Sophia was watching him glide slope with tangible awe in her eye. He saw it was only Zoe's grip on her hand that kept the young woman from fleeing.

Ed sat down across from her and saw she was trembling.

He wondered what had brought her to this level of fear. It couldn't be him.

"hello Sophia,"he said.

"hi Mr. Walters."Sophia squeaked.

Ed looked at her cautiously."You can call me Ed. Are you ok ?"

"Please don't hurt me,"she whined.

"I would never spite you !"he gasped.

Sophia looked at Ed like she didn't believe him.

"Why would you mean I would do that ?"he said incredulously.

"Don't shimmer with me !"she growled and the sentry duty looked over at them with a scowl.

"I swear I'm not ! I hold no score against you. I'm not mad at you. I forgive you."Ed said as bluntly as he could.

"What ?"the young charwoman gasped, staring at him, clearly shaken.

"I don't clasp grievance. That doings never really made sense to me. It's over. It happened and we all move on. There is already too practically former stuff happening in life to knock off prison term on clobber that happened in the past. I forgive you. You should forgive yourself maybe and retrieve of thing you can do to facilitate your conscience. It makes you experience so much better,"he said with a smile.

Sophia began to cry. Zoe looked at Ed and mouthed ‘ thank you'to him. He felt embarrassed to see the new fair sex falling apart. He stood and pointed to the way out. Zoe nodded.

As he left he noticed that capital of Seychelles and her lawyer were no longer there and it looked like Zoe was the finis visitant. According to the clock on the wall there was just fifteen transactions left anyway. The guards let him out and he walked back to the nominal head doors. Looking out the windowpane he noticed the Baron Snow of Leicester was coming down really hard. He walked back to the enrolment desk.

"You weren't planning to repulse back to the urban center were ya ?"the man behind the counter called out.

"That was the design, yes,"Ed admitted.

"interstate highway is closed. County roads are almost impassible as well. You'll have to waitress until the plows come by in the morning.

Ed felt fatigue settle on his bones. An ache began in his head. He needed to eat."Is there a hotel nearby ? Food ?"

"Just the Cloverleaf Roadhouse and Inn about a mile due east of here. clean and jerk rooms and a near eatery but the bar there can get pretty bully. existence so close to the penitential it gets more than its fair share of the rougher component. You be careful if you go there."

Ed nodded. It didn't look like they had an alternative."Where did the lawyer go ?"

"Kendra ? She has home nearby,"the clerk explained.

"Ah."

Ed found himself a chairman and waited for Zoe. It wouldn't be long as visitor's hours were almost up. He watched the storm outside the windowpane and its furiousness seemed to be increasing. This was what the other visitors had been fleeing. He rubbed his synagogue as the aching grew.

Zoe showed up at exactly 8:30PM and rushed over to hug Ed.

"Thank you ! Thank you ! Thank you !"she cried into his chest.

"What ? What did I do ?"

"For the first of all clock time in years I got through to my baby. After she broke down I spoke with her and we really connected. I could finally see my little Sophia behind the poison her father filled her chief with. She sees it too now ! Oh Ed, this is too wonderful !"

Ed smiled down at Zoe and hugged her tight. When he pulled back his expression was concerned."Listen, we have a bit of a problem."He pointed outside."The road back to the city is closed due to the storm. There's an inn a knot away we might be able-bodied to get some way in but we'd better go now."

Zoe looked up at him and just nodded. They zipped and buttoned up and pushed out into the storm. Ed got Zoe back into the truck and went around to get in his English. A bombastic Snow drift was blocking his door but he managed to get in finally. He got the truck started and clear of the drift and got them back out onto the county road heading east. Even with the wipers going full speeding visibility sucked so they drove very slowly. The drifts across the route made the driving all the more treacherous.

Finally they saw the glow of a sign on the north side of the road up ahead and pulled off into a parking lot. Ed saw the lot was pretty full and was worried about their being able to get some rooms. enervation weighed his shoulder joint down, thirstiness gnawed at his abdomen and concentrating so hard on the road had turned the aching in his principal into a thumping pain. They had to block up. Besides, there was nowhere else to go.

He carried Zoe across the snowy parking lot to the front door and they went inside. The disturbance was deafening from the bar and restaurant down the hall to the right. The reception was straight ahead so they shook off the snow and walked up to the desk.

A whine old man with the filthy whiskers Ed had ever seen watched them coming, keeping an eye on the large savage dressed in mordant. His optic turned to the shorter beauty when she pushed her toughie back.

"Good evening. We'd like to get two suite for the Nox,"Zoe said.

"All I got is one left. A twofold bed, at the far end of the hall, ground floor. Everyone is stuck in the violent storm. Bad for driving. near for business."He cackled and Ed thought his part sounded like dry fall leaves crunching underfoot. It rattled his nerve and he scowled. The man's smile slipped away as he eyed Ed nervously.

"We'll get hold of it."Zoe said glancing at Ed with a frown.

"I need to eat."Ed grunted to Zoe and she nodded. She wondered at his gruffness. Maybe it was his thirstiness ? She saw him yawn.

Zoe exchanged info with the clerk and they got their way key.

"Restaurant is pretty full. You may need to eat in the bar,"the old man offered and Ed's frown returned. Zoe thanked the man and they moved towards the restaurant.

"Why are you upset ?"Zoe asked Ed quietly.

"Sorry, I'm just tired and hungry. It's been a really hectic workweek and it's only Tuesday. The parkway did me in,"Ed apologized. They reached the entering and a chevy looking air hostess shook her head word.

"Maybe there's a table in the bar ?"the woman suggested.

Ed recalled the warning from the shop assistant but he was beyond caring at this point. He was hungry and he wanted to eat ! He stalked into the bar and looked around. It was pretty full as well and noisy. He walked slowly down the aisle peering into the indistinctly lit room for an empty table. There were booths for four along the wall and most of them only had two hoi polloi in them.

Ed stopped and growled in defeat. Two men in the booth next to him stood up and made their way to the bar so Ed sat down at the cubicle they'd vacated rather quickly. Zoe slid into the former side of meat of the John Wilkes Booth with a surprise look on her typeface.

She was staring at him wondering where this behavior was coming from. He'd growled and frightened off the customers ! kind sweet Ed was intimidating ! She felt a thrill run through her.

A few min later a waitress stopped at the table."What can I get ya ?"

"food for thought. beefburger ?"Ed asked and she nodded."Two Warren Earl Burger and an order of magnitude of fries."His promontory ached."Scotch malt whiskey. work it a double."

The waitress turned to Zoe."A hamburger with salad please. Oil and vinegar dressing. Beer. Whatever's on tap that goes well with the burger."The waitress smiled at her and hustled away.

Ed undid the top two buttons on his coating but kept it on as the room was a piddling poise even with all the bodies in it. He looked up and saw a ceiling blowhole. He held up his hand and felt cool down air pouring down from it. He scowled again.

"Who runs air conditioning in a snow violent storm ?"he muttered.

"Ed ! What's amiss ? You're so… angry !"Zoe asked.

He glanced over at her."Sorry, I get irritable when I have a headache and this one is a doozy."

"Why didn't you say anything ? We could have gotten some annoyance cause of death at the penitentiary."

Ed shrugged and rubbed his temple."I rarely get headaches."

She reached across the table and placed a deal on his and stroked it sympathetically.

Ed looked down and marveled at how pocket-sized her hands looked against his. Then he recalled just how strong her little hands were. In their very first meeting she'd taken him for a drive and she'd clung to him with incredible tenacity.

A familiar atmospheric pressure began to build up in his pants as he remembered that day. Ed turned his script over and held her finger's breadth in his. She smiled at him and he raised her hired hand to his brim. When he began to sensually buss each knuckle she gasped and squirmed at the feeling of his back talk caressing the sonant skin. The sensory faculty was shooting directly to her puss and she couldn't get her hand back from his grip. His eyes were on hers and the heat in them made her feel like she was naked to his gaze.

"Ed ! Oh fuck ED ! Please, oh fuck !"she panted.

He caught motion in the recession of his eye and looked to see the waitress standing beside the table frozen by the display. He released Zoe's hand.

Zoe pressed her fingerbreadth to her own lips causing a flare of lust in Ed's center that made her heave once more. Ed looked like he was seconds away from tearing the table away and taking her against the wall. Fuck ! She wanted that so much ! She forced herself to seem towards the waitress. The cleaning woman placed Ed's scotch before him with a shaking hand which she snatched back. She placed Zoe's beer in battlefront of her while Ed took a sip of his beverage.

Ed swallowed and felt the drink burn its way harshly down his throat. This was not good scotch. There was picayune point in sipping it to savor the flavor so he threw the rest down his pharynx and hissed his disfavour. He looked at the waitress."Is this the serious Scotch whisky you have ?"With the burning in his throat his Holy Writ came out far more than baleful than he'd intended.

She nodded with spacious eyes.

Ed looked at his deoxyephedrine."It tastes like spirit of turpentine but it's as soundly a painkiller as any. I'll have another double."He placed his spyglass back on the char's tray. She nodded and rushed away.

Zoe stared at Ed. Maybe the clothes were affecting him. It felt like the gentle individual across the table had been replaced by someone nighttime, dangerous and vehement, total of bottle up furor. She began to shiver in reaction.

Ed saw Zoe shivering and scowled up at the release again. He slid a petty further into the cubicle and looked at Zoe."ejaculate over here."He held open the right position of his jacket and she understood what he wanted. She pulled her coating off and moved over to his side of the table, sliding right up against his side and he wrapped his coat and arm around her. He loved the flavour of her cushy curves touching him. She felt… really good.

Zoe leaned back against his hard body. It felt so proficient and she felt so good under his arm. She looked up and saw he was looking down at her with a different kind of hunger.

The waitress returned with his drink and cutting tool wrapped in diaper. While she placed them on the table Ed slammed the scotch back. He placed the glass on her tray and she looked at him."Another ?"

Ed's pharynx was burning raw so he just nodded. She nodded in regaining and moved away.

The scotch was beginning to damp his headache and Ed was grateful for that. He began to relax and he hugged Zoe tighter to his body. She sighed and bit her lower lip as she smiled to herself. Ed watched her pearly teeth slide across her plump lip and he leaned his head down and used his provide hand to turn her Kuki towards him.

Zoe gasped as Ed's brim closed on hers. The first osculation was appease. A simple pressing of their mouth together. Then he slid his lower lip against hers as she sucked in her breathing spell, sparks shooting through her face. The third kiss introduced his tongue gently stroking her pep pill lip. Zoe's nipples stiffened and pressed against the close fabric of her top. She tried to kiss him punishing but he held her in plaza as his mouth explored hers. She whined her need but still he stroked and caressed her lip as her tongue tried to catch his. Her hands desperately slipped below the tabular array's airfoil and found the hard rooftree of his cock pressing against his pant leg. Ed's oral fissure stopped and he growled deep in his chest. Zoe pulled her hands back and froze, her physical structure shaking, her breathing time short. She almost came in her pants powerful then. It was as if she was being kissed by some savage savage, just this side of fierceness, passion without control or cadence. She felt him trembling as well but it was just a signboard of him preparing to train his prey.

There was a sharp knock on the tabular array and Ed pulled back from Zoe's delicious mouth to look over at a man wearing a strange looking hat and a drear blueness jacket with something on the implements of war. He was carrying a joint which he'd used to rap the tabular array with."Save that for someplace private… sir,"the man said looking away from Ed's ominous regard. He looked at Zoe instead and she recognized the uniform of a local police officer. She nodded to him and pulled away from Ed who leaned back against the bench and rested his eyes. The officer smiled at Zoe and moved on. Zoe caught worried glances from some of the other patrons and she had to suffocate a smirk as she knew how scented Ed really was.

Ed's tierce double scotch arrived and Zoe gestured for the waitress to impart it quietly while his eyes were closed. She didn't want him ordering another one until their food arrived.

The fair sex nodded gratefully and quickly left.

Zoe froze. apprehension filled her as she saw the new comer walk into the bar from the eatery. She hadn't seen him since her husband went to jail so long ago. She'd prayed she'd never see him again. Luis Ramos was a cold blooded Orcinus orca. Her married man's second in program line. The last affair she'd heard he was on the run. What the the pits was he doing here, so close to the penitentiary… Sophia ! That devil Matias, must have found out where Sophia was and sent Luis to get in signature with her ! That's why Sophia had been so shaken when they met !

Ed felt Zoe go still adjacent to him. He cracked spread out his eyes to see what she was looking at. He saw a man, not very tall, not so big, but something cold in his optic. He wasn't worried though. Ed felt very calm. He looked down. Ah. More Scotch. He sipped it this clip, tired of scorching his throat and was surprised to find it actually tasted… not quite as very much like turpentine as before.

The man turned to face their direction and went still. Ed noticed he was looking at Zoe and something about how he was looking at her raised the o.k. hair on the rear of Ed's neck opening. He began to rumble quietly and stopped when Zoe's hand suddenly gripped his tightly. The man noticed this action and Ed finally registered on his brain. The lecherous smile disappeared from his face and for a endorsement he seemed uncertain. Then a coldness calculated flavour smoothed out his features and he stepped towards their table wearing a grin that didn't reach his oculus. His coat was over his arm.

"Zoe, as I live and breathe. I never expected to see you again."Luis said smoothly. Ed already didn't like this man.

She took military strength from Ed's solidity next to her."Luis, I regret all three of those things."

His smile cracked a little and his eyes got a little cardsharper."stale words for a inhuman night."He looked at the interfering bar and back at their table."Busy place. Mind if I join you ? We could utter about the good old days. think of the fun we used to have ?"

"pull wings from butterflies."Zoe breathed and Luis smiled as he recalled the moment.

Ed didn't know what she meant by that but how it made Luis smiling triggered an almost feral choler in him. He saw Zoe was frozen with fear and something in him was raging to get out. He didn't know how to share with individual like Luis so he loosened his clutch a lilliputian on the trio to that rage.

"I don't believe Zoe wants to let the cat out of the bag to you. I don't believe those old Clarence Day were that good."Ed said calmly but he felt a dull sunburn begin.

Luis looked at Ed and pretended to ignore his words but inside he was already imagining how he was going to carve up this insolent nestling."Zoe, perhaps you should differentiate your big acquaintance here to be civilized. This could be a friendly visit."Luis said quietly and she shuddered. She knew how unsafe Luis was and Ed was a kitty in a shark tank. She gestured for Luis to sit and Ed glanced at her in surprise but he held his tongue.

Luis looked very pleased with himself now. He tucked himself into the cubicle and pushed Zoe's coat over a little. He looked at it and lifted the goon to his nozzle to breathe in deeply."Ah, I see you still wear that delicious perfume."

"Doesn't he realise how creepy that makes him ?"Ed asked Zoe and she snorted in surprisal. She hushed Ed as her holy terror came rushing back. Ed didn't like seeing her afraid. Not one bit. He looked back at Luis who wasn't smiling.

Ed pulled his arm from behind Zoe's articulatio humeri. He leaned back against the Bench with his hands relaxed on his lap and studied the man across from him. He took another sip of his Scotch malt whiskey and it was almost smooth… no, no it wasn't.

Luis began to sneer."I see Zoe never spoke to you about me… about us. Even when she was with Matias I would take her as mine. She was feisty but she always bowed to my needs like a good little… slut,"he said baiting the big man. When he exploded with rage Luis would let his blade saltation and the man would scream… deliciously. It would be self defense of course of study but the man would still die.

Instead Luis was disappointed as the big hood just sat there, staring back at him with no reflection at all ! Sipping at his swallow. Something was wrongfulness with him. Luis needed to push harder.

"She didn't William Tell you how she screamed out my name begging me to blockade. Then begging me to continue as I took her to the very sharpness of existence ? She was mine."He leaned forward custody under the table, blade ready to dig deeply into the big thigh, aiming for the arterial blood vessel."She will be mine again."He looked at Zoe and saw her tears and trembling. Looking back at her companion he frowned. nada. It made no sense. Where was the fury ?

Ed finished his drink. He put it down and leaned forward to look into the eyes of the man across the table. He'd felt the slightest of hint against the inside of his knee so he knew he was up to something. He was a bad man and he'd made Zoe scared and sad. His Zoe. Ed released his suitcase on the leash completely. He smiled.

"You say Zoe was yours yet you lost her. If she was yours you should have held on to her."

Ed grabbed Luis'wrists under the table. Luis tried to wrench his hands back and thumped the underside of the table instead making Zoe screech. He looked into the cold ice blue devil eyes across the tabular array. The smiling was gone. He pulled at his coat of arms but the grip was too strong and it was getting tighter. It began to hurt. Really hurt.

"LET- LET GO !"Luis barked at him as his face twisted with the pain.

Ed suddenly leaned back and planted his big black body of work kicking on Luis'chest while he kept a clutch on his sleeve.

"Listen carefully to me Luis. Do I give your attention ?"Ed's voice was frigidity and furious. The passion Luis had been looking for was arriving but it was still a slow soma up.

Luis was having trouble breathing as the boot was pushing so hard on his chest and his coat of arms were being pulled hard in the inverse counseling. His berm felt like they were going to pop out. Luis was gritting his dentition in his own rage and spittle was leaking from his sass."I'M going TO screwing KILL YOU THEN I'M GOING TO FUCK ZOE AND putting to death HER TOO !"Luis spat. The noise tier in the bar dropped considerably.

Ed squeezed and bones cracked. Luis screamed and dropped his butterfly knife which bounced out onto the trading floor of the aisle. The bar went quiet. Everyone looked in their commission and people in nearby tables got up and moved into the aisle. But no one left.

"No Luis. You're not going to do those things because I can't let you hurt Zoe anymore. I'm going to separate you something very crucial now. Are you listening ?"

The painful sensation was excruciating and Luis had tears running down his cheeks. He nodded then screamed ‘ Yes'when the man squeezed his broken wrist joint, grinding the pearl together.

"Look at me Luis. Look into my middle and get wind me."Ed's voice was almost a whisper. Luis was shaking and drooling but he managed to follow the instructions. Ed nodded. He was prepare.

"ZOE. IS. MINE !"Ed released the rage in one mighty roar and pulled with all his might.

Luis'high pitched scream went on and on. When Ed let go the humble man toppled sideways and fell out of the kiosk. He was unconscious before his top dog hit the floor.

Ed sagged back against the Bench and gave himself a shake. The rage was gone. Completely. He felt so much wagerer but he was very lite headed. He needed food. He looked at Zoe who was staring in jounce at the man on the floor. The man who hurt her."Are you ok Zoe ?"Ed asked."He's not going to suffer you anymore."

Zoe turned her eyes to Ed and he was looking at her with concern. Gentle, confection Ed destroyed one of the most evil sadistic demon she knew.

The butterfly. Oh my god !

Ed lifted his hands back onto the table and Zoe shrieked when she saw the blood on his hand. There was a bloody cut across the back of the right field one. Where Luis slashed him with the blade.

"FREEZE !"

The officer who'd been by earlier finally worked up the heart to attack. He had his gun out and pointed at Ed who raised his eyebrow in surprise. He lifted his manus up causing line of descent to drip onto the table. Zoe pulled his hand down and pressed her napkin onto the wound. She looked at the officer."Get a initiatory aid kit ! He's bleeding badly !"

"He just pulled this guy's arms off !"the cop yelled pointing to man on the floor.

"That guy is Luis Ramos. He's wanted for murder, violation, and a telephone number of other terrible things. He raped me and almost beat me to death twice and he was definitely going to kill us this evening. Ed stopped him. Now get me some bandages ! ! !"Zoe screamed.

The waitress arrived with the first aid kit. She and Zoe worked on sealing the cut on Ed's hand. Once they got the blood cleaned up they saw it wasn't as bad as it first appeared. They covered it with gauze bandage and wrapped it.

"Please, is our food ready ?"Ed asked the waitress.

The womanhood smiled at him and nodded at Zoe. She stepped over the man on the story and left to get his meal. The cop watched incredulously as Ed grinned widely as his food for thought arrived. Ed thanked the woman and began eating. He smiled and sighed in felicity. The bar's noise horizontal surface began to return to rule though most of the attention was on them.

Two snowy State cavalryman pushed their way through the bunch and stood over the unconscious body.

"What happened ? Who's this ?"one demanded as the other knelt to prove the harm done to him.

Zoe raised an eyebrow at the cop.

"Apparently he's Luis Ramos. Wanted for murder, rape and early offensive activity. He accosted these two with that knife and that fellow there eating did… that to him."

The state trooper on the base pulled a plastic grounds bag from a pocket and used his glove to place the knife into the bag. He went to check the man's pockets and found his wallet and passport.

"His driver's license says he's Ray Mendez. His passport says the same."the cavalryman on the floor said.

"He's a wanted criminal. He was the partner of my ex-husband, Matias Escobar. I think he's still working with him though Matias is in jail."Zoe said.

"Matias Escobar ? diddlysquat !"the standing trooper exclaimed. He was comrade with the case. The unconscious mind man did look a niggling like Luis Ramos without the beard.

The trooper was going through Luis'coat which had fallen to the storey."I found a gun. No, two gas and an additional clip."

The mathematical group paused and looked at the unconscious man. If he'd started the confrontation with the guns instead of the tongue the result would consume been considerably different.

"How did you get here ?"the cop asked the trooper.

"Four bike drive SUV. Why ?"

"If you can get him to the penitentiary they have a medical section there which may be able to make unnecessary his arms,"the cop explained.

The res publica trooper looked at each other and shrugged. One left and came back with a sheet. They lifted Luis onto it and carried him away.

The cop turned to Zoe."You staying here tonight ?"

"Yes,"she answered.

"Please don't leave until I've gotten your command in the cockcrow,"he said.

"No promises that Ed will call up much,"she said looking at the man polishing off the second burger.

The cop nodded and followed the cavalryman out.

Zoe moved to the posterior across from Ed and nibbled on her own food for thought as she watched him. What he'd done for her tonight. He'd saved her life. He'd punished Luis for her. She smiled thinking of his delicious screams. When he'd bellowed in Luis'boldness that she was his… it took her breath away ! She wondered if that was just the score talking. She looked more closely at him. He didn't seem too tipsy. The waitress stopped by and she asked for a large methamphetamine hydrochloride of water for Ed.

When she returned with it Ed drank the entire chicken feed in one nip. He thanked the woman for the delicious intellectual nourishment. She was quite taken with his change in attitude and gave him a big smiling. Zoe asked for the bill.

"What was that Ed ?"Zoe asked.

"What was what ?"

"Earlier. You were so… grim."

"I don't know. Hunger, vexation, exhaustion. Maybe all of the above. It's a lilliputian blurry for me. I feel better now that I've eaten. Headache's gone."He yawned mightily."I'm still really tired though. Are you done ? Can we go to the room ?"

She nodded and paid the bill. She gave the waitress a very generous tip and they headed for the room.

As they passed the lobby Ed smiled at the old man behind the counter surprising a smile out of him in return. They stopped by the large picture window looking out over the parking lot. The snow was blowing hard but it didn't seem to be falling any longer. The cars would call for digging out in the morning.

They walked down the long hallway to the final room. Zoe unlocked the room access and they entered. Ed flipped on the visible light and looked at the tiny room. It had to be the pocket-sized hotel way he'd ever seen. He moved further into the room and looked at the bed with some concern.

"It's pretty small,"he said to her and she nodded.

Zoe hung up her coat by the door and stepped into the petite bathroom shutting the threshold behind her. scavenge towels. Toilet composition, liquid ecstasy, shampoo, conditioner, and body lotion. The basics. Toilet, sink, and a stand up lavish stall that might not fit Ed's broad articulatio humeri. It would do. She used the toilet and washed her typeface and hands. She pulled off her leggings and slipped off her panties. The panties went into the cesspit for a good rinsing. She rung them out as much as she could. They'd go on the radiator to dry overnight.

Stepping out of the washroom she bounced off of Ed's back as he was hanging up his coat. God ! He was like a brick wall dressed in ignominious !

"Sorry !"he muttered. He slipped into the washroom after she passed by. He'd missed the fact that she was naked from the waist down.

Zoe took off the residual of her clothes and neatly folded them as she'd need to wear them in the morning. She stacked them on the bureau and took off her earrings, gold wrist joint bauble, and band. Her step-in went onto the smoke by the window.

She pulled the puff Down and the piece of paper were white, strip and smelled freshly washed. The hotel was as canonical as it came but at least it was clean. Then she noticed the elbow room had no TV.

When Ed came out of the washroom he was holding his fold up clothes in battlefront of himself."I had to wash my underclothes as I'll be wearing them tomorrow,"he said. Zoe smiled and pointed to the hummer. Ed saw the pink panties drying there and he smiled. He put his clothes on the chairman and laid out his underclothing next to hers to dry.

Zoe watched him turn and walk back to the bed. God, he looked scrumptious !

Ed carefully slipped under the covers and settled himself on the small bed until he was no longer hanging over the sharpness. He felt Zoe's diffused, naked skin against his side and a air pressure began in his groin.

Zoe was on the edge of the bed. She lifted Ed's left arm and tucked herself in against his body more tightly. She heard Ed groan quietly and she smiled to herself. She was also enjoying the feeling of his skin against hers. When he brought his arm back down he pulled her in closer, his fingerbreadth kneading the muscular tissue on her back.

"Oh shtup, Zoe ! You feel incredible !"he sighed.

She loved feeling Ed's hands on her but there was a dubiousness she needed him to suffice. She looked up at him through her bangs as she rested her Kuki-Chin on his bureau. Her eyes were dark and held something Ed couldn't recognize."Ed… back in the bar you told Luis that… I was yours."

Ed blushed furiously. The Holy Scripture made him sound like a primitive brute. He wanted to apologize to her for acting like she was a thing to be possessed… but he couldn't. He looked into her anxious eyes as his mouth moved but he made no sound. Instead his body acted. He pulled her to the center of the minuscule bed and pinned her to the mattress under his body. He kissed her, hard and passionately. She squealed at his aggressiveness and clung to him.

He pulled back from the candy kiss and looked into her now stunned eyes."You're mine,"Ed said, his voice diffuse and oceanic abyss. Her smile explosion across her face like a new morning. His heart and soul almost burst as it swelled with dear for the woman in his grasp. He stroked his rim back and forward across hers, the tip of his knife dancing out to tinge hers briefly. She made niggling mewls of need as she struggled to capture his tongue. He moved his oral fissure down to her pixilated nipple, sucking on one as he rolled and tugged the other. Zoe arched her back to storm more than of her tit into his oral cavity but he continued to tease and abuse them drawing squeals and hisses from her. His rima oris moved further down her organic structure but his hands continued to squeeze her big pap. He didn't bother with the subtleties when he reached her pussy. He lapped and sucked and flicked until she screamed out her orgasm, her digit roughly tangled in his hair pulling him sozzled to her sex.

As she wailed and shook he moved back up and rubbed his shaft over her dribble back talk. He pushed forward suddenly and push back his cock mysterious inside her. His mouth was on hers again, his glossa stroking and exploring her mouth as hers did the same in his. He gripped her tomentum and took her rima oris with his as she gasped and moaned. His articulatio coxae thrust forward forcing his peter deeper with each stroke until she had it all. Then he put some real power into his thrusting. Her branch wrapped around his articulatio coxae so he could hurl recondite and faster and her coat of arms slid around his sides to hang on for dear life as they bounced on the sleazy mattress. He hammered into her and she began to claw at his back as her second spillage reached critical sight. He moved his mind down next to her and growled as his own orgasm rushed over him.

"fuckmefuckmefuckmefuckmefuckmefuckmefuckmeFUCKMEFUCKMEFUCKMEEEEE !"she chanted from a rustle until she was screaming.

"OH FUCK ZOE !"he roared as he pinned her down against the mattress. He rocked back and forward across her clit as he fired his cum trench inside her.

"AAAAHHHHH ! AAAAHHHHH ! AAAAHHHH !"she cried as the pressure took her higher.

Ed pulled back until he was half way out and lifted his weight from Zoe to let her catch her intimation. He watched her grimace as she came back to her body. The pink tip of her tongue swept across her slightly swollen backtalk. Her breathing slowly steadied but her optic continued to roll back and forth as her eyelids opened and closed randomly. He smiled and pulled himself from her organic structure and his dick surged. He still wanted her.

He rolled Zoe onto her venter and her optic opened to look at him over her shoulder joint. He pushed her legs apart and slowly lowered his cock against her kitty. He used minimal military unit this time but his prick slowly pushed inside. He was so gradual about it she began to shake as her physical structure expected the harsh pound. Still he went slowly and eventually he was fully encased in her puss once more. Gentle ripples ran up and down his length as her body reacted to his slurred intruder once more. He rested his weight against her round ass and she hissed with pleasure.

Ed kissed her cheek and neck opening gently as she slowly pressed her ass back against his pelvis. He throbbed slowly and she sighed as she felt that. He began to rock forward and back making his cock rub Zoe's pussy in a very odd way. The underside of his cock was dragging against the front line paries of her pussy while the top was rubbing the spiritualist hide at the base. He kept his front slow up and drawn out.

"FUUUUCCKK ! MOTHERFUCK-AH !"Zoe gasped as her headspring dropped to the pillow as her eubstance went through a series of earth tremor. He found a post where he could create shallow cam stroke to rub the head of his cock against a particularly raw spot inside her pussy.

"OH SHIT ! MOTHERFUCKER ! YES ! RIGHT THE- THE- THERE ! FUCK YES !"Zoe cried out. He began to stroke his pecker roughly in and out even at the stern angle.

"AAAHHH ! MOTHERFU- AHHHHHH !"Zoe wailed. He began to speed up and Zoe lost complete ascendency of her muscles. She was his to contract. His detrition over that raw spot was turning her inside out. She clung to the sheets and wailed constantly and incoherently.

"UUUUHHHNNNN ! FFFFUUUUUUU- UUUUUHHHHHNNNN !"

Ed needed to go faster so he tipped downwards slightly and began to slap her ass with his pelvic girdle. The impingement were sending shockwaves through her body and she suddenly clamped down on his rooster as her muscles spasmed with her sudden climax. Ed managed only three more thrusts before he exploded inside her once again. He rested his free weight on her ass and she squeezed his prick tightly within her as her muscles spasmed once more.

He pulled his softening cock from her and she moaned quietly.

She rolled over to let him reside on his side of meat facing her. Her boldness was flushed and she was smiling blissfully at him.

"You're dangerously habit-forming, Zoe. I don't know why I act like I do with you. I could do this all dark and never have enough."Ed sighed. Her eyes widened as she looked down at his semi-hard cock bobbing against his leg with his pulse.

"No, we won't do it again tonight. We really have to get some sleep."Ed said. She looked relieved but she also didn't. He looked away before he lost restraint again. Already he was feeling the tug of her sexy body.

"Is- is it just the sex ?"she asked with a subdued voice.

Ed's middle locked on hers and she sucked in a breathing spell. There was a furiousness in his gaze she'd only seen when he was confronting Luis. He took her side between his paw. She felt his quivering as he struggled with his emotions.

"I wasn't certainly what's driving my… intense motive for you. I was worried that it was the sex because I don't want to be that kind of person. I'm not ! But in the first place when I told you that you're mine I realized then that I meant everything. creative thinker, consistence and individual. I love you Zoe."

Zoe burst into crying and pulled Ed's face to hers. She kissed him tenderly and his sassing were so soft against hers. This was the Ed everyone else got to love. And he loved her too ! Her rip flowed down her face.

"Why are you crying ?"Ed asked cautiously. He wasn't sure if she was happy or if he had upset her.

She struggled to get ascendence of herself and rested her brow against the thick sinew of his chest. God ! She felt so condom !"I've had such bad portion with love life Ed. I'm a magnet for the whip kind of men. I didn't expect to ever find somebody to have it off again after the horror of my marriage ceremony to Matias and vilification by Luis. I was too afraid. I gave up Hope. I avoided sex as well as the men I met all turned cruel. I took a chance on you and discovered a buff who could bring me incredible passion and pleasance without the cruelty. My heart began to yearn for to a greater extent but I couldn't tell if you had those feelings for me. Your reactions are so… physical !"

"I still don't understand why I react the way I do with you Zoe. It doesn't happen with anyone else and it frightens me because it's so unlike me ! But whatever it is it doesn't modification my tactile sensation for you. My feelings are mine."Ed struggled to explicate it to her and she kissed him once more. Her lips were so astound. He felt that surge again and pulled back when his candy kiss began to get out of control. He groaned as he leaned away from her sassing. When he opened his heart she was looking at him with such a happy grin he had to smile back.

He suddenly recalled Angie's response to his confession of love life and he closed his eye. He wasn't sure if he could pull through another rejection, especially when his warmness felt so raw.

"What's damage ?"she asked.

"The grounds I feel stupid for being so possessive of you is that I'm in lovemaking with Grace and others as well. Angie… she didn't take my admitting I was in love with her so well. I understand her and I'll understand if you feel like she does-"

"Ed ! I love you too !"she exclaimed and smiled seeing his enormous relief. He pulled her against his chest and she listened to his heart whacking strong and fast.

Suddenly he yawned widely and she heard that too. She giggled."Tiempo para el sueño mi Amor !"

Ed pulled back and blinked sleepily at her."I don't know what you said but it sounded so beautiful ! Good night Zoe."

She snuggled back against his chest feeling happier and more content than she had in years."Good night Ed."



Chapter 14

The police returned the next morn and took argument. As expected Ed's recollection of the event was blurry at skilful. The cut on the back of his mitt and the illegal knife and hired gun they'd seized was cogent evidence enough for the police he'd been attacked and had defended himself. The extreme point lengths he'd gone to in his defense was… disturbing but Zoe explained that Ed didn't get into engagement and wouldn't know how to so in his tipsy state he just… did his Best. Just the Lapp the military officer handed Ed a summons to look before a judge in the territorial dominion courthouse. The judge would audience Ed and critique the evidence to determine if foster outlaw charges would ask to be laid. The officer assured then that the statements he'd taken from the witnesses painted the upshot as a very shed light on slip of self-defence.

They learned that the prison's medico hadn't been able to do much for Luis as the damage had been so austere. When the storm abated a medivac helicopter picked Luis up but odds were slim that he would hold his branch. Ed looked a trivial ill when he heard that and the officer felt better about Ed's naturalness for it.

Ed grabbed a digger from the Inn and helped dig the cable car in the parking lot out from their snowy tomb while Zoe watched from the warmth of the lobby. Ed made a lot of friend as he helped each motorist with a grinning. Ed's truck was at the far end of the lot and it took almost three hours to free them all. By the time Ed and Zoe got back on the highway then back to the city it was noon.

He planned to go right to solve but he dropped Zoe off at Angie's dwelling house first. Before she exited the hand truck she crawled up onto his lap and kissed him. Ed moaned at the sensual tactile property of her lips on his. Then his left-hand hand was tangled in her compact hairsbreadth and his right was squeezing her ass hard as his natural language probed the hot astuteness of her mouth. Ed pulled back from the osculation with an enormous effort of will. Zoe was panting and looking at his lips intensely.

"God ! Zoe- I- I have to go- go to crop !"Ed gasped. He slowly pulled his bridge player back.

Zoe nodded and pushed herself back from Ed onto the bench fundament. They saw motion and realized Angie had been exterior and saw them.

Ed's joy collapsed when he caught the uncomfortable expression on Angie's face as she turned to go back inside. Zoe looked between them and remembered what Ed had said about Angie. She'd seen the troubled saying on her friend's nerve and now she saw the pain on Ed's.

"I'd better get moving. You have a unspoiled day Zoe. I- I'll see you at the Christmas party on Friday."Ed said in a subjugate vocalisation. He recalled the party was here at Angie's and worried about how that was going to be.

Zoe felt tears rising in her eyes hearing his pain. She had to get out of the motortruck before he saw them and thought he was responsible for them. He didn't deserve the spare pain. She nodded and slid from the truck and pushed the room access closed. With a moving ridge she ran to the front line threshold. She heard his truck pulling away and she took off her coat. She needed to get out of these apparel but first of all she wanted to talk with Angie. She marched through the house and found the blond in the kitchen making lunch.

"Welcome back !"Angie said with a strained smiling."That was one Inferno of a au revoir osculation ! I take it the prison sojourn went well ?"

Zoe struggled to observe the news to react to the false sunshine but she blanked out. Then language popped into her head.

"We got snowed in and had to stick at a topical anesthetic inn. Luis Ramos showed up."Zoe stated.

Angie cried out in blow when Zoe mentioned Luis. She'd heard the revulsion tale and saw the exposure of the injuries Zoe had suffered at his hands. Zoe's current facial expression was the consequence of multiple unspeakable cosmetic and reconstructive surgical process from those days.

"He was surprised to see us there but he enjoyed telling us that he was going to kill us."Zoe was shaking with chemical reaction as she relived the moment. Angie moved forward to comfort her but Zoe held up her paw and she stopped.

"Ed saved my biography last night."

Angie blinked, confused. Ed ? What could such a sweetness man have done against such a psychopath-

"Ed pulled his arms off."Zoe answered Angie's unasked question.

Angie cried out in surprise and put her hired man over her oral cavity. Her eyes were wide and shocked.

She wanted Angie to think about what Ed had done for her and the potency toll."Ed has a summons to come along before a judge to see if criminal thrill should be brought against him."She didn't bother to mention the cop's opinion that it was a formalities. She'd let Angie sweat.

With that she spun and ran up the step to get cleaned up. She ignored Angie's shrieks to come back and return her more detail. damage Ed would she ? Let her effort.

-=-

Ed got to work late and pushed through the room access into the antechamber still wearing the dress from the previous night. He had a scowl on his brass from vexation. He was so tardily !

Lydia, Mr. Drakos'daughter and the office's dispatch/receptionist/human resourcefulness officer looked up with a smile. The grin froze on her face when she saw the improbable mass of masculinity marching up to her desk.

"Good day Lydia."Ed rumbled in his fatigue. It had been a tiring morning.

"Ed ?"she mumbled, her sassing hanging open.

"Yeah, sorry I didn't have time to vary into my coverall. I just got back from visiting the pen. We got snowed in death night and had to stay overnight. We ran into some difficulty in the bar and I hurt a bad man, I think he's going to suffer his arms. I had to shovel the auto out this mor- …ning. Sorry. I guess I'm babbling. Still tired."Ed refocused on Lydia and she was staring at him with her mouth open. He reached over and lifted her jaw and she snapped out of her shock.

Lydia was seriously instill with Ed's new look ! His story of getting into a fight in a bar was cute as was the exaggeration of the man losing his blazon. That was a dead game show that he really didn't know how to tell a tall story. She gave herself a shingle and smiled at him.

"Nice pelage !"she said.

He smiled and modeled it for her and her grin got wider. This was the sweet Ed she knew. He flipped open the lapels and an gasbag fell out of his inner pocket onto the floor. He picked it up and frowned. He opened it up and flattened out the papers on her counter.

"Oh yeah, I'm going to ask to book a day off in January to go to the courthouse to address to the judge about the man I hurt. The police officer thinks it will be ok even though I hurt the man so bad. Can we Koran the date now ?"Ed asked.

Lydia picked up the papers and saw it was a court summons. A existent court summons. She read the engagement and pencilled it onto her notepad to enter it later into the office calendar. Her grin was gone as her shock returned. It was literal !

Ed tucked the papers back into the gasbag and put it back into the inside sack of his coat.

"Dad… dad wants to see you."Lydia mumbled as she took in his new dark feel. afters Ed ? Dangerous Ed ! Suddenly her date tonight with Julian, an actual attorney, seemed dull in comparability. Why had she overlooked Ed again ?

He nodded to her and walked down the hall to Mr. Drakos'office. Lydia watched him all the way.

He looked in the door and the old valet was on the telephone but he looked up and smiled. He waved at Ed to enter, pointed to the door to get Ed to close it, and gestured to the chairwoman across his desk. Ed sat in it and waited. He yawned mightily and his boss caught the motion.

Drakos ended the shout and smiled at Ed. He noticed the tiredness and recalled how tough he had been working Ed in the past few weeks. He felt bad about that but Ed had become such an integral part of his clientele and he was so good at what he did. Now he got to honor him. He opened his English drawer and pulled out a midst envelope.

"Ed, I just wanted to let you bonk there will be a bonus in your next paycheque. It's a Christmas bonus and all the government activity taxes have been deducted so it isn't as high as you deserve."He shook the envelope."This is the fun Christmas bonus. This one is for your ‘ above and beyond'endeavour this year. The people we work for, who will remain nameless in this conversation, put together this incentive for you. This is not to be reported in your income tax."He handed Ed the envelope.

Ed looked inside and his middle opened wide in shock absorber. There had to be at to the lowest degree ten thousand one dollar bill in there ! He looked at his boss in surprise.

"That's just between us. No mention of it to any of the others. Everyone got a footling redundant for the astound year we've had but we don't mention it to each other. Is that clean ?"Drakos instructed. Ed smiled and nodded. This would go a prospicient way for grace of God's Department of Education !

"I know you've been putting in a lot of hours these past few weeks. I want you to manoeuver domicile now, you look a little tired, and you're off until next Tues, right ?"Ed smiled and nodded."Have yourself a Merry Christmas Ed and thank you very much for your fantabulous study !"

"Merry Christmas Mr. Drakos ! Thank you for being such a wonderful wise man and foreman !"Ed said with a grin. They stood and shook hands. Ed tucked the envelope away and made his way back out to the lobby.

Before he got there he heard the rattle of a president suddenly being pushed back and Lydia was kneeling on her desk leaning over the counter. She was holding something over her headspring as she rested her chest on her other arm on the counterpunch. She had a skittish smile on her face and she was looking up. Ed glanced up and saw it was a piece of mistletoe. He grinned at her and she began to titter. Before she could prepare he leaned forward and took her brass between his hands and kissed her sensually, stroking her lips with his but no tongue, and she swooned.

"Have a Merry Christmas Lydia !"Ed said to her as he pulled back.

"You too… Ed !"she sighed with a lackadaisical smile.

He went back out to his truck and drove dwelling. He was going to contract a exhibitioner then a nap ! As he pulled into the driveway he saw Angie's Land Rover parked there.

Ed pulled into his billet in the garage and went in the face door. As he hung up his duster coat by the rachis door he heard articulation in the kitchen so he kicked off his boots and let his ft carry him there. Rachel, Zoe, and Angie were sitting at the kitchen table. All three char looked up as he entered and all three stood up but Zoe reached out to Rachel and snagged her arm before she could move forward. She didn't plosive consonant Angie though and suddenly Ed had his limb full of a wonderfully soft blond.

"Ed, oh my god Ed ! Are you ok ?"she cried.

"I- I am now."Ed said, tightening his limb around her and letting himself bask in the lambency of her concern for him. She felt so proficient in his subdivision. She tilted her head back to see him and he did the Saame. Then her mouth was on his, hungry for his candy kiss, and he was healed. The pain he'd been carrying washed away and tears escaped from his eyes.

When she pulled back she saw his face was wet and her formulation became implicated."What is it ? What's wrongly ?"

Ed's vocalization was roughly with emotion."Nothing, I'm sorry. It just… It feels so well to have you back in my weapon system. I thought- I thought I'd lost you forever."

Angie's sum ached at the nuisance and easing in his voice and she pulled him tight as her own tear burst forth. They held each early as they cried and soon Rachel and Zoe were there hugging them both.

It took a bit but they finally managed to get control of their emotions. Zoe and Rachel guided them back to the kitchen mesa and Ed snagged a nappy to wipe his eyes. He handed one to Angie as well and she smiled gently as she took it from his hand.

"You have to see a judge about the… violence of your answer ?"Angie asked Ed, her supercilium drawn together in worry.

"Yes, I've booked a day off in January for the summons. The law officer said it was a formality as all of the evidence showed it was self-defence."Ed replied calmly.

Angie's psyche whipped around to appear at Zoe who had the most destitute smell on her fount."You ! You led me to consider Ed could go to jail for defending you !"

"Actually I said nothing of the sort. I merely mentioned he would go to court to see if condemnable tutelage should be brought against him. I just left out the contribution about it being unlikely."Zoe smiled. Rachel was wearing an tremendous grin though she covered it with her hand to stifle a bird. She knew exactly what Zoe was up to and she loved her friend for doing it before she had the chance.

Angie's mouth was working but no words came out. Finally she managed to whine one out.

"Why ?"

"You needed to be honest about your feelings for Ed ! Especially to yourself ! Ed's been nothing but honest about his feelings for you !"Zoe barked at her acquaintance."Loving him and being loved in return does not lessen what you had with Danny. Maybe that sort of dear comes once in a life-time but it's not the only form of beloved and every kind should be treasured !"

Angie looked ashamed. Ed reached over and stroked her impudence."Enough."he said gently."No Sir Thomas More angry Logos. If Angie can find a tiny place in her pump for me I'm happy. I don't want to supersede her married man. That was charming ! I would receive loved to have got met him. He sounds like an awesome man."

Angie's optic teared up again and she held Ed's palm against her cheek."Danny would own really liked you too."

Ed's stomach chose that moment to foretell its displeasure at being so empty.

The woman all laughed at his embarrassed blush.

Rachel stood up and patted his shoulder joint on the way by."I'll make you a sandwich."

"Could I have two ?"he asked.

"Yes, you can have two."She turned back and gave him a speedy kiss on the mouth. He smiled in surprisal at her and she skipped out of his reach to make him lunch. She felt like a kid again.

Angie took Ed's manus and got his attending. He was like a big kid sometimes. Once he was looking at her she fixed her eyes on his.

"How badly did you hurt Luis ?"she asked carefully.

Ed's center slid away from hers as a look of discomfort passed over his features."I heard I pulled his arms off but I don't recall… exactly. I don't even know why I decided to do that. My head was hurting pretty bad so I had a funfair amount to drink. I was also thirsty and fatigue. Then he said he was going to hurt Zoe… again."

Something feral flashed behind his oculus. Zoe and Angie sucked in a placid breath and shared a look.

"I couldn't let him do that. So I stopped him. That's all I really call back,"Ed shrugged looking at the tabletop. Angie looked over at Zoe.

"While Ed was out shoveling this dawning I got to talk with the cop. He had the medical report and since he knew Luis raped me he shared it with me. Luis'carpus ivory were completely shattered. His elbows were dislocated. His berm were dislocated and there was a considerable quantity of gentle tissue and vascular tearing in both arms especially at the berm joints."Angie and Rachel were listening intently and Ed was trying not to listen at all as he felt queasy."Six broken ribs and a crack sternum. Luis is going to misplace his arms. They'll have to amputate both at the shoul-"

Ed was up and racing for the small washroom. He heaved over the bathroom until he became aware of flaccid hands rubbing his back. As he sat back a poise, damp facecloth wiped his cheek and he mumbled a thank you.

"I'm sorry Ed. I should have spared you the details."Zoe said from the doorway where she stood with Angie.

Rachel was kneeling next to Ed and handed him a glass of pee."Rinse and spit then imbibe the rest."

He looked at her fondly and she gestured for him to do it, though she had the hint of a smile on her lips.

Once Ed had himself sorted out he went back to the table and Rachel finished making him lunch. His abdomen settled down so he was able to eat. While he ate his sandwiches Rachel brought out a veg stick tray with dip and the others nibbled at that and talked about the party. Ed remembered something. He waited for a moment to inject a comment into the conversation. Finally he raised his script and they looked at him with grins.

"Are we talking too a great deal Edward ?"Rachel asked.

"No, I'd just like to say something,"he replied.

"The floor is yours,"she grinned.

"I met Victoria Rutledge at the prison finis night. Her family has shunned her. No one visited her in prison house. Her daughter are in England with her parents. Her lawyer managed to get her out of prison and she'll be released Christmas day. She has no one to go home to. I- I invited her to join us. I hope you don't mind."

Rachel looked a little upset at low gear but reined it in and nodded. Angie also nodded to Ed."That's a very gracious affair you did. Of course she's welcome."

Ed finished his lunch and by the end he was fading. He stood up and put his plate in the dishwasher and gave each of the Lady a osculation as he announced he was off to take a shower and a nap. He slogged up the stairs and walked into his room. He closed the door and sighed, looking at the bed. Soon.

He walked into his washroom and brushed his teeth. Then he pulled off his clothes which went directly into the bin. He loved his cascade. He loved the elbow room Rachel let him use but he especially appreciated the shower bath as the one he'd used back in Shirley's cellar had been so modest ! He got the water running prissy and hot and turned on the overhead rain-shower showerhead. The hot piddle was so good and he felt his brawniness soaking in the hotness and begin to unbend. He hadn't realized how tense he'd been.

He closed his center and just stood there for a few minutes enjoying the everlasting animal experience.

He started when he felt a soft body press against his back. The piano tits were pressing against his rachis and sass were gently kissing his shoulders. He peered over his shoulder and saw wet, white blonde hair. Angie.

He tried to turn but her arms tightened around his chest.

"I want you to have intercourse how dark I am Ed for putting you through that pain. I was so confused. Love meant one thing to me. I realize now how wrong I was. I was unforced to abnegate myself have it away to protect an ideal that didn't need protection. I- I love you Ed."

Ed wouldn't be denied any longer. He turned in her weapons system and took her human face between his hands. His mouth found hers, her lips soft, uncoerced and hungry. His lingua caressed hers and he sucked it gently into his mouth and she clung to him as she moaned.

His work force moved down to constrict her firm ass nerve and she ground herself against him.

He pulled back from the kiss and moved his oral cavity down to her tits, sucking the nipples into his rima oris and thrashing them with his tongue.

"Oh screw, ED ! YES, that feels- AHHHH !'

He gently scraped his teeth over her areolas and tugged on her smashed pap with his teeth. Angie basis her pelvis against his, feeling his midst cock pressing against her. nooky he felt so hot !

Ed suddenly knelt before Angie and pressed his mouth to her pussy.

"FUUUUUUCCCKKK ! OH shtup ! ED ! GEEZUS ED ! OH ! NNNNNNNGGGG ! ! ! !"she wailed as he sank two heavyset fingerbreadth into her wet channel and sucked on her frown lip. Her fingers went into his hair as she held him tight against her while he pumped his fingerbreadth into her.

Ed looked up and was entranced by Angie's raw ravisher as she looked down into his eyes while she gasped and shook through her ecstasy. Her pixilated tummy brawn were rippling and trembling from the waves of joy shooting through her cheek. He could recount she was getting close.

He slipped his fingers out and ran them quickly over his stiff shaft. He pulled his mouth back and Angie's flavor became dire. Ed stood and lifted her with his hired hand under her ass. She didn't even have time to puff before Ed's prick found its chump and drove into her. He reached bottom in one fortuity and she threw her head back as the sensation overwhelmed her.

Ed lifted Angie and slammed her back down, his pelvis slapping hers wetly. He sped up his motions as he felt his body ramping up for a release.

"AAAHH ! AAAHH ! FUUHH ! NNNGG ! FAAAA !"Angie cried out each fourth dimension their bodies slapped roughly together. Ed was growling with his need for her. His movements sped up again and Angie felt like she was losing tactual sensation with her dead body as her mind began to float on a cloud of energy.

When Ed leaned Angie's back against the insensate roofing tile she shrieked in shock and her mind returned to her organic structure fast. Ed's pelvis began to drive up into Angie in short quick CVA like a motorcar. This position allowed Ed to release up a hired hand to squeeze her big chest and gently roll and tug on her nipple.

"ED ! ED ! ED ! ED ! ED ! ED ! ED ! FUCK I'M CUMMING ! ! ! I'M CUMMING ! OH GEEZUS ! CUMMING ! ED ! ED ! OHFUCKOHFUCKOHFUUUUUUCK ! ! !"Angie cried out and her ramification shook uncontrollably as she gushed through an intense orgasm.

Ed's flood tide crashed over his senses and he tried to maintain himself as still as he could as his body twitched and ground against her.

Both sagged and breathed hoarsely after their bodies finally finished their surges.

Ed carefully lifted Angie unmortgaged and she hissed as her abused flesh protested. Ed's cock was looking a small raw as well. He gently set her backrest on her pes but her stage wouldn't financial support her so he carried her under the nebulizer and they rinsed off. Ed shut off the water and they stepped out onto the carpeting. He wrapped a towel around her and sat her on the can. He dried himself off as she rubbed the towel over her body weakly. She looked as fatigue as he did.

"I think we could both use a nap,"he suggested and she nodded with a grin. Once she was dry he lifted her in his blazon once more and carried her to his bed. He used her feet to labour the comforter down as she giggled at his effort then he laid her down on the mattress. He moved to the other side of meat and climbed in under the cover charge as well. He pulled her close and she sighed as she felt his soundbox touching hers. Ed wanted to ask Angie where Rachel and Zoe had gone but before he could she was asleep and he wasn't far behind.

-=-

Ed woke suddenly feeling a cushy hand caressing his cheek. He was gasping for breathing space and his soundbox felt like it was shaking apart. Something about that flared a ugly image in his mind and he cried out again.

"Shhh, Ed ! It's ok. It was just a bad dream ! Shhhh !"a soft voice whispered to him.

He panted for breath and let his muscles slowly relax. His milieu came back to him. His bed. His sleeping room. Angie lying following to him with compassionateness and love radiance in her eyes.

"It's over, Ed. The nightmare is over."

Ed's tormented mind drew him back to the minute he'd crippled Luis. The tone of the bone fragments grinding in his strong grip. The sickening maven of tearing and popping ligaments and ripping muscle tissue. The sudden give of bones snapping under his boot. It all suddenly rushed back to him and he shuddered and shook as insensate flare rushed down his spine. Everything clouded by the liquor and suppressed in his head from that moment had been faithfully recorded in his memory. He recalled the deepness and magnitude of the rage he'd felt when he'd punished Luis. It felt extraterrestrial being and it frightened him. Deeply.

She knew he was reliving the attack in the bar. She knew what he needed."There was no other choice Ed. You protected Zoe. Luis would consume killed you both. I'm so proud of you. We all are. We love you."

He clung to Angie, pressing his face to her soft bosom as he shivered, rip running down his buttock. She held him, running her fingers through his hair and felt him slowly relaxing until he slipped back into an exhausted sleep at last.



Chapter 15

Matinee motion picture Day on Noel Eve was a tradition for Ed and Grace. He'd been a little nervous about Grace being able to do it this year with her hectic row schedule but she assured him that school day was out and her naming were caught up so she was free for the day.

They'd picked a brainless, over the top action mechanism brain confect moving-picture show as that had also become a tradition in Holocene epoch geezerhood. Ed paid for the tickets and walked Grace to the concession stand to debase up on salty, sugary treats. It still bothered Ed how much he was charged for the junk food but the smiling on good will's face made up for it.

They cuddled together after lifting the armrest between their seats and prepared for their game of hit-or-miss when the previews began.

"I told you Monster hand truck in Outer distance was going to be a collapse !"state of grace said smugly.

"The lack of an hearing with a sophisticated enough palate for such a fine pic is not the motion picture's fault."Ed said to her with his olfactory organ in the air.

state of grace busted out into a bark of laughter causing her to be shushed from multiple spots in the theatre. Ed grinned at her looking at of outrage.

"The movie hasn't even begun ! jerk-off !"she yelled.

Ed scrunched himself down a piddling though he was too big to really hide himself. Wait a minute. He looked over at Grace.

"Since when do you say ‘ Wankers'?"

saving grace smiled at Ed's feel of surprise."It's become a new favorite. A bunch of us in class have adopted it. That and a few early phrases."She turned her face back to the covert."One of our grouping is a late immigrant from Jolly Ol'England. Lawrence of Arabia Phipps. He's a really good story guy and he has an awful idiom ! Very smart and very charming,"she teased, watching Ed from the corner of her eye. Her smile dropped when she saw Ed's face of despair.

"Ed ! I was just teasing you ! I have no romantic feelings for him !"she said placing her hand on Ed's arm.

"I'm sorry Grace. I've just been very befuddled lately. My emotions are all over the post and I don't understand how I'm supposed to behave or deal with these insecurities. In some ways it was simpler when I was living with you and Shirley and I was secretly in love with you. My simple brain could deal with that situation. beingness in love with one woman, even when it wasn't returned, I could dole out with that."

"Ed you know it was returned !"she interrupted.

He nodded."Yes, but at the time I didn't know. My dot is that… the math was simpler then. One man. One woman."A troubled look passed over his face."Now I find myself in sexual love with six women and I have no clue how to behave."He gazed into state of grace's optic."I just had a unspeakable surge of jealousy when you were talking about the partiality British man and at the same meter my thinker is screaming at me that I have no right to expect you to be congregation to me. But the idea of you being with another man-"Ed's eyes flared and he closed them tightly. Grace felt a tremor fling through his body.

"Ed ! Shhh ! I'm not with him. I don't want to be with him ! I want you ! I'm in love with you !"free grace pressed her forehead against the side of his promontory and whispered to him, feeling him slowly begin to relax.

"How can I be so jealous ? Where do I get off expecting any of you to not happen a better spouse ? someone smart and singular, who can have smart and mirthful conversations and challenge your judgment !"Ed's emotions were going off the rails again.

Grace could see Ed wasn't going to enjoy the movie so she stood and picked up her drink and popcorn."Get your stuff and follow me."

Ed scrambled to succeed as Grace left the theatre. He found her standing by a table in the snack bar seating area. She pointed to a seat and once he was in it she asked him for the tag to the film. She got them exchanged for the next showing then sat down next to him.

goodwill took his hands in hers."A woman doesn't nous when her man gets a little envious but she also expects her man to trust her not to do anything to jeopardize their relationship. Being ally with another man and some innocent flirting is not a signboard that a woman is looking for a new young man. That's just normal doings and it makes masses feel just. Going beyond flirting means something entirely unlike and that problem usually begins with a communication problem. I can't speak for the others but I'm not interested in other men. I'm in beloved with you and you're all I need. I know you'll be honest with me and you haven't hidden the fact that you are in making love with the others. Loving them doesn't mean you love me less, does it ?"Ed shook his head with wide eyes and she smiled."I didn't think so."She stroked his cheek with her hand and he smiled."When did you jump worrying about this ?"

"When I was in New York with Angie and she told me I couldn't be in honey with her because I was in love life with you. That got me to wondering if the others felt that way, even a footling bit, and thinking about how greedy I must seem. I felt really bad but I can't help what my heart feels. I'd never lie to you or hide something from you or the others but I made Angie so infelicitous by telling her. I didn't know what to do. I felt so lots better when I talked with you and Rachel when I got back but I was still really sorry I'd damage Angie."state of grace smiled at Ed and kissed his hands.

"When I took Zoe to the prison house I was care how I'd react around her, especially after what happened with Angie. You know how lost Zoe makes me. When that bad man started to make her pock and sad I… I got really possessive of her. Like I just did when you mentioned that guy at your school. Only with Zoe I was drunk and he was going to kill us."Ed shuddered as he flashed through the memory. state of grace squeezed his hands to console him and it did.

"This jealousy and possessiveness… I never knew I could experience like that. I don't like how they make me finger. I don't like the kind of soul they make me feel like I'm becoming when they get in my head."

"Everyone feels those emotions from time to time. Understanding them and being on guard against them is natural. I feel that way about you too but I know you love me and I've been able to set aside the jealousy when you are with our booster. Only because I know how strong our love is."goodwill said gently.

Ed scooped her up onto his lap and squeezed her tight. He kissed her tenderly and she moaned softly in his sleeve. When he pulled back from the candy kiss he rested his brow against hers.

"Please differentiate me you'll never leave me ! I need you so often !"he whispered to her.

"Oh Ed ! You have me for life !"she gasped.

He hugged her and they sat like that for a while just enjoying the affaire of their bond. He felt so safe in seemliness's arms. She could explicate anything to him without him feeling like an idiot.

grace loved Ed's big arms wrapped around her. It felt like the strongest armor imaginable. Recalling what he did to that weirdie Luis just made her find safer.

Finally Grace slipped to her feet, picked up her collation and pulled Ed over to the games area. They had some time to kill until the adjacent showing.

-=-

After a largely forgettable flick they decided to land up their day with dinner at the eating place they went for their low gear day of the month. Not surprisingly it was very officious so they wandered through the mall, trying not to get trampled by the finis minute heroic buyers.

"Grace, I have a severe confession to relieve oneself,"Ed said with a sigh.

She looked over at him with a smirk as she knew he couldn't keep on any recondite, dark secret."What is it ?"

"My Christmastime shopping sucked this year ! I didn't get a chance to get any dangerous shopping done. employment was so busy and when I did get to shop in New York every place Angie took me was so expensive I couldn't afford anything ! I got short things but I'm ashamed with how short I managed to get."

state of grace laughed at his moue and he looked at her in surprise."Oh Ed, I wouldn't worry too a good deal about the present,"she said giving him a dessert smile.

"What do you think ?"

Grace just grinned and hugged him. She couldn't explain it in this busy shopping center.

They passed the jewellery store where he bought her the earrings. As they gazed inside casually window shopping with no existent intent something caught Ed's eye again and he pulled Grace inside. The Saami gross revenue shop assistant was standing behind the counter as close time. He leaned over and said something to her quietly and she gave him a grinning and nod.

"What are you up to Ed ?"Grace asked him, raising an eyebrow.

It was Ed's turn to just grin and hug her. She caught on it was payback so she just returned his smirk. When the clerk placed the pack box on the replication the light-colored caught the large round cut diamond in the center of a pack of small rhomb and free grace's face went still with electric shock.

Ed beamed a grinning at the salesclerk. This was exactly the response he was hoping for. He looked at the Mary Leontyne Price and choked a piffling but he still had the gasbag of hard cash on him so it wouldn't be a problem.

"Ed…"

He looked at her."Yes, Grace."

"What are you doing ?"Her vocalization was cracking as her optic couldn't leave the ring. She was trapped by the brilliance of the stones.

"I remember we talked about getting tie and you told me savourless out that you didn't believe in marriage-"

"I DON'T-"she interrupted.

"That doesn't mean you can't wear a pretty tintinnabulation ! All of the others have beautiful rings and I've seen you admiring them. I want you to feature one. One as beautiful as you are to me. delight take over this."He lifted the ring from the box and took her shaking bridge player. He managed to guard her still enough to slide the ring onto her finger. The stripe was just a little loose but they could have it resized later. It wasn't so at large it would fall off.

Grace made a soft short suspire noise and Ed knew she was in love with the pack. It looked stark on her lovely hand. Her eyes finally slipped away from the gemstone to see the price tag clipped to the box. She squeaked.

Her center shot to his."ED ! You can't seriously pass this a lot money on me-"

"Ring it up,"Ed said to the clerk."I'll be paying cash."

The cleaning lady looked at Ed in surprise and smiled."Very commodity sir, then I can provide you a 10 % cash discount."

Ed smiled gratefully."Thank you !"

goodwill was speechless and her mouth hung unfold.

The clerk returned promptly with the amount and he counted out thirty-one one hundred dollar bill broadside. The woman accepted the money and took them back to her cash station.

Ed reached over and lifted goodwill's Chin to close her mouth."Maybe one day you'll commute your mind about getting marry. Maybe not. It doesn't change the fact that I want to be with you until we are both old and grey. I love you Grace. Thomas More than I knew was possible."

Grace leapt into his implements of war and kissed him fiercely. Her weapons system were wrapped around his neck as his arms were around her back holding her tightly against him.

The shop clerk was standing on the other side of the counterpunch with split in her eyes and his receipt in her hand.

"BBZZZZZZZZTTTTTTTT ! ! !"

Ed began to chuckle against Grace's mouth and she snorted. He set her back on her understructure and turned to the clerk.

"At to the lowest degree this time you got to the buss before the bell,"the woman grinned, handing him the receipt and a small flatware composition folder."This is the rhombus appraisal for the ring. save it dependable as you need it for insurance claims."

"Thank you !"Ed said accepting the folder. He tucked the receipt inside. It went into the pocket with his remaining cash.

"commodity hazard you two !"the woman said giving them both astray smiles.

Ed walked Grace out of the shop and guided her all the way back to the restaurant. She couldn't tear her eyes away from the gang and how it looked on her finger. They walked up to the hostess desk and handed in the doorbell. They were directed to the other side of the desk. Ed couldn't get over how engaged the place was. It was a loony bin and he heard the hostess telling someone there were no table available for the rest of the night.

"Are you sure ? It's our anniversary and it would stand for so much,"said a very distinctive voice.

Ed spun around and a very beautiful dark skinned woman looked over at him."Mishka ?"he blurted. Tall and slim, she was wearing her gorgeous yearn heterosexual ebony hair loose tonight. She was every bit as lovely as the number 1 day he'd seen her. Her expressive brownness heart above high os zygomaticum and a strong, distinctive nose were currently showing her surprise at seeing him there. Tonight she was wearing a night red lip rouge on her full sassing which made her white teeth glow !

Then he saw heather mixture standing at her shoulder."heather mixture !"Equally tall but often fairer in complexion she had blue centre and foresightful crinkly white blond hair. Her smile showed perfect teeth that were no longer covered by orthodontic braces. One variety she'd claimed she was going to do had obviously not happened. Her beautiful large nose was still in place and considering Mishka's was similar in setting Ed understood why she'd finally come to go for it.

Grace heard the familiar names and finally lifted her capitulum. She rushed around Ed's body and grabbed Scots heather into a hug then hugged Mishka tight as well. Calluna vulgaris was gushing about how unbelievable Grace looked. They noticed her slender outline.

"Your mesa is set,"the hostess said to Ed.

"Is it for two or could it fit four ?"he asked.

"It's a big booth. It seats four,"she replied, looking impatient.

Ed looked at Mishka."volition you join us ?"The woman seemed uncertain but she finally nodded. The hostess grabbed two more menus and led them to the booth. Ed slid in one slope and saving grace slid in following to him. Mishka sat across from Ed and heather got in across from Grace who was all grins.

"Is this your yearbook Christmas Day Eve flick day ?"heather asked.

Grace nodded, bursting with the want to render off the closed chain but holding back until the metre was right.

Mishka looked at Ed curiously so he answered."Grace and I see a matinee pic on Christmas Eve every class. What's this I hear about an anniversary for you two ?"He grinned at her look of embarrassment. ling was grinning mischievously.

"I must fink. I lied. I was just hoping they would consume pity and find us a table."Mishka blushed and broom held her hired man under the table.

The waitress arrived and everyone rank drinks. Ed was surprised that Grace stuck with water. He was for certain she'd go for the margarita like Calluna vulgaris. Mishka didn't boozing and Ed was driving so he stuck with the lemonade.

"OH MY GOD ! ! ! LET ME SEE YOUR HAND !"Heather suddenly yelled pulling Grace's left across the mesa to gaze at the lovely ring. Heather lifted her principal and gaped at the two across from her."You're engaged ? ! ?"

"No ! No, we're just in love and want to expend the rest of our life story together. I've told you how I feel about marriage. It's not for me."Grace said with a well-chosen smile on her face. Heather saw that Ed was equally well-chosen so she was gladiola he hadn't been hurt that Grace wasn't the marrying form. She sighed as she looked at the gang then blushed as Mishka was looking at her strangely.

Mishka took Grace's deal and looked at the ring. She thought it was very pretty and seemliness was obviously completely in love with it. She squirmed a little and looked at Ed."You have very ripe predilection in jewellery !"

eventide Ed could tell Mishka was uncomfortable about something."Thank you. I hope you don't mind me asking but should I not have asked you to join us tonight ? You seem… infelicitous about something."

Grace looked over at Ed in surprisal. He'd picked up on something she'd missed entirely. But then all she'd been looking at was her ring. She studied Mishka's expression and there was nervousness there."I didn't offend you by expressing my feelings about marriage did I ?"

Mishka shook her drumhead."No. Everyone should finger comfortable about expressing their opinion. Every relationship is dissimilar. Some are less conventional than others. Sometimes some traditional aspects are still… appreciated."She glanced nervously at goodwill's ring then over at Calluna vulgaris whose center had returned to the diamonds.

"How about you ling ? What are your feelings about marriage ?"Ed asked with an clear smile, unaware of the tension across the tabular array. thanksgiving winced.

Heather glanced at Mishka and her gaze was trapped by the intense face in the dark mantrap's Brown eyes.

"I'm… I'm for spousal relationship. Doesn't have to be the whole Christian church thing but ... I like… tradition."

Mishka smiled at Heather and Grace saw some tenseness leaving her body. The electricity flowing between the ladies across the table was almost tangible.

"That's how I feel as well. I wasn't trusted how you felt about it though."Mishka said softly to Heather.

"Oh, I can see myself getting married one day,"Heather replied dreamily.

"Do- do you cogitate this summertime would be too soon ?"Mishka said and placed a small-scale box on the table between them.

ling's middle went full with surprise. She began to gasp.

"Breathe ling and give the box."thanksgiving said with a grin.

Heather had tears in her oculus so she wiped them with her napkin and picked up the box with trembling deal. She pushed it spread and shrieked."OH MY GOD ! OH MY GOD ! OH MY GOD !"

Mishka was openly crying with joy and her grinning was ear to ear."Heather my love, will you marry me ?"

"YES ! YES ! A jillion metre YES !"Heather cried and pulled Mishka into a tight hug. She kissed her and rocked as they hugged again.

Ed and goodwill were smiling and crying with big grin on their faces. The waitress came by and left the drinks. state of grace indicated they needed more time and the char slipped away.

Mishka lifted the anchor ring from the box. The Centre stone was a very prominent radiant cut ball field with two smaller radiant cuts on either slope. numerous smaller baseball field surrounded the three Stone and lined the white gold set. She slipped it on Heather's finger's breadth and the woman began to hyperventilate once more.

"Oh my god ! Mishka ! It's so beautiful ! I love you so often !"Heather gushed once she got her breathing back under controller. She looked into Mishka's eyes unable to believe how consecrate she was to get met her. She swung her eyes over to Ed."All of this became possible because you were kidnapped !"

Ed laughed at the sudden odd direction the conversation had just taken."What ? ! ?"

heather was getting energise again and Mishka just watched her with dearest in her eyes."It's true ! If you hadn't been kidnapped saving grace wouldn't have gone looking for you and she wouldn't have picked me up after work to facilitate find you !"

"You were the one who insisted on trying Mishka's home first !"Grace pointed out with a grin.

Heather's eyes went dreamy as she recalled that kickoff meeting.

The waitress arrived back and everyone had a ducky so they ordered those and Ed ordered the loaded nachos for the table.

"Ed, we couldn't finish our meals when we had the nachos before !"Grace laughed.

"But they're so proficient ! And we have two Sir Thomas More the great unwashed to contribution them with !"Ed exclaimed.

"Speaking of sharing, how would you two feel about being the best man and the housemaid of pureness at our wedding ?"Mishka asked.

"Ooo ! Nice segue !"Calluna vulgaris said to Mishka with a grin and gave her a high five.

Grace looked at Ed and they nodded."We'd be honored ! Just let us make love where and when,"Grace said.

"There won't be too many masses at the wedding. None of my kin will acknowledge I'm alive."Mishka said with a sad shrug.

"My mom won't be there. She's convinced Mishka is the devil and now that I've been poisoned I'm no better. She said she'd pray for me though !"Heather grinned.

Ed had a frown on his case. He didn't understand."How can your families behave like this ?"

Mishka glanced at good will who was patting his arm.

"You're justly, Ed. It's not ok, but I'll explain it later,"she said to him.

Ed nodded but still looked a footling upset.

"fountainhead you'll have us and Rachel, Angie, Zoe, Stephanie and Carolyn. If you don't mind kids I 'm sure Stephanie and Carolyn would convey their kids.

Ed brightened up thinking of a marriage with kids running back and Forth."Oh ! There's also Victoria Rutledge. She's being released from prison on Christmas Day and will be joining us at Angie's."

Mishka looked at Ed."I don't believe I've met Victoria… time lag, isn't she the one who shot her husband ?"

Ed's face turned sad."It's true. She shot him but only after a lot of abuse from him. He was a very bad man ! I hope she doesn't become ‘ the fair sex who shot her husband ’. I'm sure she's more than that."

"I'm sorry, Ed. You're absolutely right. I'll do my best to see her as you do."Mishka said contritely. He blushed and nodded with a pocket-size smile.

The nachos arrived and Ed's smile grew. Everyone dug in and happy sounds were heard on both slope of the table.

"I'm peculiar about something but you don't have to answer if it's too personal a inquiry,"Ed began.

thanksgiving gave him a troubled look and Mishka and Heather shared a look. They'd received their fair share of ill-mannered questions regarding their relationship. They hadn't expected one from Ed though.

"Why this eating place and why tonight ?"Ed finished.

Mishka and broom both giggled with relief."This is where we went on our low official particular date,"Heather answered getting a confirming nod from Mishka.

"Us too ! kind of,"Grace said with a shy grinning at Ed. He smiled back as he remembered that night too.

Mishka continued."I've wanted to ask Heather for weeks but I was just too queasy. I wasn't certain how she would oppose to being asked to get married. Marriage is a hot push theme for gay couples. I desperately wanted to wed this beauty but I was afraid she'd be in the early summer camp. utterly set against marriage. I've been so officious at work I haven't been able to feel time to convey heather mixture here. Christmastime Eve seemed thoroughgoing but I forgot to make reservations and we got here late. I might let chickened out again but for Ed asking us to join you two and asking heather point blank the question that's been haunting me for weeks. It was perfect. I admit to being a Coward when it comes to doing or saying anything that might put our relationship at risk. You mean too much to me."Mishka looked apologetically at Heather who lifted her buff's paw to kiss her palm tenderly.

"Ed and I are guilty of keeping our true belief hidden from each other for too long. If we've learned one affair it's to hold on the channels of communication open. Be open and honorable and don't keep secrets."Grace said holding Ed's hand.

They managed to stop off most of the nachos before their meals arrived and Grace looked at her collection plate with dismay. Then she turned and gave Ed an ‘ I told you so'looking at. He smiled sheepishly at her. They ate what they could. seemliness saved quad as she really wanted to try the cheesecake. Mishka and Heather followed her principal and the three boxed the quietus of their repast and ordered some decadent dessert.

Ed wasn't a big fan of sweets so he just finished his burrito and sat back feeling pleasantly stuffed.

"Oh my god ! This is good cheesecake !"seemliness sighed. She turned a stern eye on Ed."How could you have let me overleap this on our previous visits !"Ed chuckled as did the Lady across from them who were also blissfully consuming their own desserts.

The waitress returned and they asked for come apart measure, Mishka insisting on picking up the nachos.

Once they settled the government note they bundled themselves into their coat and prepared to guide out into a winter violent storm that had arrived while they were eating.

"Holy fuck Ed ! That coat makes you bet totally badass !"Heather gushed as he modeled his new leather smock. He smiled modestly.

Mishka looked at the violent storm raging and turned back to him."Do you have winter tire on your truck ?"

"No, but I'll conduct it slow,"he replied.

Everyone hugged and free grace and Ed congratulated Mishka and Heather once more. Their faces were glowing with their love.

They headed out first with Ed shielding grace from the worst of the fart on the way back to his truck. He got her inside and climbed in his side. They waved at Mishka and Heather who drove past then got themselves underway.

"The heater still broken in this heap ?"Grace asked as she shivered.

"Hey… yes. There's a cover under the seat."Ed replied.

thanksgiving pulled it out and draped it over her branch.

The idle words was blowing hard and visibility wasn't good even with the wiper blades going to the full speed. Ed noticed the road was pretty slick magazine so there may have been freezing pelting earlier. He lost raceway of Mishka's taillights as they were moving more assuredly on the route with her winter tyre. Ed kept his speeding down and made no sudden moves.

As he crested a humble upgrade he felt their rack lose travelling bag on the road. He was only going 20mph on the 30mph side road but the downgrade and the ice underneath the truck allowed them to pick up speed.

"Ed ?"

"We're sliding. I have no traction at all. Hang on !"Ed called out.

The road ahead was sack of traffic and relatively categoric. There was no tangible danger of hitting anything but they could slide off the road into the ditch. Luckily the ditches weren't that deep but they were currently filled with deep fluffy snow so if they went in there they weren't getting out.

"ED !"Grace screamed as the truck began to slue sideways towards the ditch.

He grabbed her hand as the back wheels caught some snow and spun them around in a refined twirl.

With a mighty pouf of snow the hand truck slipped off the road and plowed into a huge snowdrift. Ed looked over at Grace who seemed no worse for wear. The stop had been so cushioned by the snow it had almost been slow motion. He looked ahead and saw they were only two feet from hitting a public utility pole. Beyond that he saw the banking concern he'd often use. They'd have a nice warm up field to waitress in when he called to be picked up. They couldn't check in the truck as it was too cold. He got the luck blinking.

"semen on. The motortruck is stuck and we'll have to call for a drive from the antechamber of the bank."

Grace's threshold was blocked by coke so she followed him out his and he picked her up off the seat and carried her down the road the three hundred foundation to the parking lot of the bank. While she complained that she was up to of walking, she secretly enjoyed being in his strong coat of arms.

Before they reached the entry they heard the roaring sound of engine braking and looked back to the small-scale J. J. Hill. A articulated lorry pulling a tanker had come over the little hill at speed and the driver was desperately trying to retard down on the sheet of ice.

"Oh my god !"good will breathed as she saw the motortruck Menachem Begin to clasp knife. It was still moving much too fast !

"blessing, we have to move ! Grace !"Ed said as he pulled at her arm.

She was glacial, watching the big rig following the same way Ed's motortruck had taken. Suddenly she was lifted off her foundation as Ed hoisted her over his shoulder and ran for the tax shelter of the back of the bank. She could still see Ed's truck, stuck in the Baron Snow of Leicester as the semi bore down on it. The noise it made when the rig rolled right over it and crashed into the service program rod beyond it was deafening. Ed got them behind the shelter of the building so she missed the bolide when the tone arm's ruptured gas armored combat vehicle was ignited by sparks from downed power lines.

Ed quickly unzipped his coat and pulled goodwill inside against his breast as he wrapped it around her.

A 2nd colossal clump went off and they were tossed off their feet and pummeled with debris. Ed took the brunt of it as he curled his large body protectively around free grace.

When they got their wits back they felt the high temperature of the inferno as an enormous bolide curled and twisted up into the sky. Grace was lying on Ed's pectus toasty warm inside his jacket with his subdivision around her. She lifted her head clear to look around. This seemed like the good piazza to stay for now. Luckily the snow seemed to be slowing too.

A few hour later they saw Mishka's car come to a stop and the two charwoman jumped out. Mishka and ling moved to fend before the car, holding each other, staring in jar and horror at the wreckage of Ed's truck.

"OVER Hera !"free grace screamed but the noise from the oiler flack was too loud. They were also in the phantom of the bank. She got to her animal foot and checked herself. No hurt. She looked down at Ed and saw he was grimacing in nuisance. A sparse piece of metallic element from the building was sticking out of his go out calf. He was reaching for it but she stopped him.

"Leave it in ! We don't know if it cut something vital. I'll get Mishka,"she yelled to be heard above the din. He sagged back and nodded.

state of grace made her way out of the shadow and Heather spotted her immediately and screamed. Mishka jumped then both were running towards her.

"Where's Ed !"Mishka yelled.

"He's over here ! He's hurt !"Grace blurted and pulled them after her.

Mishka knelt and examined the combat injury."It doesn't look too bad but it's unspoilt you left this in. We'll get an ambulance and I'll take tutelage of this at the hospital."She took her headphone out and called it in.

"What happened ?"Heather asked.

"Ice on the pitcher's mound. Bad tires on my truck."Ed gasped out.

"We slid off the road and got stuck in the snow. Ed got us to the bank and the truck came over the J. J. Hill too fast and followed the same path right in over Ed's truck. If the heater in the truck worked we would feature been in it when the crash happened. As it was Ed got us behind the construction before the burst. He saved my life."Grace knelt and kissed Ed. He would have enjoyed that Sir Thomas More if his leg didn't hurt so much.

Still, it was a really good kiss.



Chapter 16

Ed woke up in a hospital bed Christmas Day aurora. Sunlight streamed in the window and he could see racy skies. He felt good. He felt really, really good ! He looked around the room and it was a endearing way. There was a haphazardness from the left so he looked and Mishka walked in with a smiling on her face.

"trade good morning Mishka. You look lovely as usual !"he said with a smile.

"I wish all my patients were so complimentary !"she beamed at him. She looked at his chart then walked up beside the bed and took his hand."You were very, very golden finally night. Your big leather coating took about of the abuse so all you had were some shallow slash, bruises and the one puncture on your calf. I took upkeep of that last night. I was right, it missed anything important. You may have a little numbness there though. It might have cut a boldness,"she explained.

"I feel skillful ! Whatever drugs you have dripping into my arm are making me feel… happy !"Ed grinned and Mishka giggled at him."What ?"

"That's just a saline solution drip to keep you hydrated. The drugs we gave you wore off hour ago !"she said with a big smiling."No. I think what you have is a case of the ‘ Christmas morning jolly boat ’."

Ed started to gag. It felt so good !

When he settled down he noticed that Mishka had removed his I.V."I'm discharging you now so blessing and the others can take you home plate. broom and I will see you later this evening. I'd like you to take it easy on that leg. I'm prescribing you a cane to use for a week or two to take the tension off the leg when you walk. OK ?"He nodded."I'll have the nurse bring you the cane. After she does you can get dressed. waiting for the orderly with the wheelchair to exact you out. Alright ?"He nodded again."See you later."

With that she left. Ten minutes later the nursemaid arrived with a Black alloy adjustable cane with a rubber eraser handle and tip and brought him his clothes. He got dressed and only had to wait five transactions for the neat to arrive. While he waited he tried out the cane and found his leg was a little weak from the injury.

He felt a little whacky being pushed down the hallway in the wheelchair but all thoughts of embarrassment disappeared when he saw the smiling faces of the women he loved waiting for him. Their smiling warmed his heart. Once he stood goodwill was in his arm and Rachel and Angie braced him. Everyone got a hug and he made it to the curb to climb into the passenger seat of Stephanie's truck. Grace and Carolyn climbed in the back. Angie drove Rachel and Zoe and followed them plate in her Land bird of passage. After they pulled into Rachel's driveway Ed leaned over and gave Stephanie a kiss. She smiled dreamily at him afterwards.

"See you later,"he said and she nodded.

Rachel and Carolyn got out and helped Ed out. Carolyn tilted her side up with a smiling and Ed kissed her tenderly as well.

"See you at the party !"she said as she slid into the hand truck next to Stephanie who was still watching Ed. As she pulled out of the drive Angie pulled further in to fell Rachel off. Ed walked up to her window and tapped on it with his cane. The window came down. Ed leaned his facial expression in and kissed her tenderly as she held his face in her hands."I'm so beaming you were ok !"

"A simple wampum, milady !"he said with a bad try at a Brits accent. Her offended smile told him how well he did."delicately ! I'll leave the acting to the professionals,"he sighed theatrically and she grinned as she pushed his typeface back out her window.

He made his way to Zoe's windowpane and her center tracked him all the way. She leaned out the window and kissed him hard. He returned her passion with his hand in her tomentum. This time he didn't take a grip but instead he just ran his fingertips against her scalp. Ed pulled back from the kiss and she moaned. Angie had to pull her in the windowpane so she could get up it. She waved at Ed while Zoe pressed her fingers against the inside of the window as she stared at his oral fissure.

Grace and Rachel walked him back to and inside the theater. He took off his pelage and noticed the little tears and gouge in the leather."This coat did a great job of protecting us final stage Night !"he said.

Grace suddenly shoved him against the paries. She had tears in her eyes."WHY DID YOU open air YOUR COAT stopping point nighttime ! YOU COULD HAVE BEEN KILLED !"she raged as she shook with reaction.

Ed stared at her in surprise."I- I wanted to make sure you were secure. You were safer inside my coat with me !"he gasped.

gracility was suddenly pressed against his dresser crying her warmness out. Ed looked at Rachel for aid and she gave him a sad grin. She indicated to Ed that he should hold her tight. When his arms wrapped around her state of grace tried to labour away and beat on his chest. Ed held her compressed with Rachel's bridge player on the exterior of his arms, guiding him.

goodwill cried and cried until her tears ran dry. Ed's right leg was beginning to cramp from holding both him and good will up.

"Can- can I sit down now ?"he murmured.

grace pulled herself together and braced him as Rachel took his early side. They got to the sustenance room and gently settled him on the couch.

Pulling the Ottoman up to the couch Grace sat on it and held his hand.

Rachel suddenly noticed the ring on state of grace's hired man. She'd seen the banding earlier but the Isidor Feinstein Stone must accept been turned inwards then."That's a endearing ring ! Oh-"

Grace took in the troubled looking at on Rachel's look."It's not an conflict hoop, Rachel. It's just a lovely and thoughtful present from Ed so we could all have beautiful gang. I don't need to marry Ed."

Rachel looked embarrassed and Ed held out his hand. She knelt next to the lounge as she took his hired man and he kissed her fingerbreadth. She gasped gently at the smell of his indulgent mouth.

"I love you Rachel ! I think side by side to saving grace, I rely on you the most for helping me to interpret how to get by day to day. All the hooey my mind isn't ache enough to help me with. Grace knows how I feel about her. I would gladly give my life to protect her- No more than tears !"he said to forestall a relapse of crying.

"We survived the little accident last night pretty well. Minus my motortruck that is. Not a problem though, I can ingest the bus."

"We'll public lecture about that later."Rachel said.

Grace smiled at the stubborn smell that surfaced in Ed's eyes. poor man didn't know who he was dealing with.

"You rest here while I make some sandwiches for lunch. We are eating brightness level as Dinner is going to be heavy at Angie's."Grace said as she stood and made her way to the kitchen.

Then it was just Grace and Ed.

"I didn't mean to take a crap you sad Grace. I just needed to keep you safe. You seemed kinda out of it finis nighttime. Standing there as the big truck was sliding out of control,"he said with concern.

"I was just stunned by how sudden it was and how we could have been in the pickup when it was crushed by the tanker truck. I saw us being killed before our life story together could actually begin. All of that was filling my head as I stood there…"Grace said quietly.

"All I had in my head was getting the building between you and the truck in case something bad happened. Once I got that done all I had in my nous was getting you someplace safer, inside my coating with me between you and the building… in case something bad happened. I wasn't indisputable if something bad was going to happen but I'm glad my head was abandon enough to let me call back about it,"Ed explained.

Grace smiled at him."Me too."

-=-

Rachel brought Ed and Grace over to Angie's space a little betimes as she needed to serve Angie with some of the prep.

Ed was wearing a pair of diffused fusain grey slump, a crisp T. H. White garb shirt, a lightlessness tie, and a melanize transmission line knit jumper overtop. The black cane matched his outfit. Once they had him dressed Rachel and Grace stared at him with looks that said they wanted to rip it all off and devour him.

Rachel was wearing a stunning red dress with white sparkle that to Ed looked like Plectrophenax nivalis. He was mesmerized by the hustle of light surrounding her neckline. Or it could accept been the amount of cleavage she was displaying. That was pretty spectacular too.

Grace was wearing a new garb she and Rachel had shopped for. It was disastrous, goodwill's favorite coloring material, but it had opalescent sequins sewn in a wholesale form around her curvy dead body. She glowed with joy at his enraptured look.

Angie greeted them at the door in an amazing white and silver glittering dress that clung to her consistency, showing off her sleek physical body and emphasizing her abundant bosom.

Angie's daughter Isabelle was there too wearing a cute Santa's helper costume. She announced that was her role for the eve and led seemliness and Ed to the family room making sure they were comfortable and had crapulence while Rachel went with Angie to help oneself her.

"Are you going back to school day ?"gracility asked Isabelle.

"Yeah but I think I'm going to change over to teacher's college. I've discovered I enjoy working with kids."Isabelle said with a smile.

"Was that because of the babysitting you've been doing ?"Ed asked in surprise.

Isabelle nodded."Yes, something good came from mom's probation menses. I found my unfeigned calling."She smiled at Ed's happy facial expression. When he pushed himself to his infantry and pulled her into a big hug she squeaked.

The doorbell saved her as she had to go suffice it but her cheek was as red as her costume. Grace stood as well and gave him a smile as she shook her head.

Isabelle returned with Dale and Tristan Grant who both smiled widely when they saw Ed and seemliness. Their smiled turned to dismay as they saw the cane.

"What happened to you ?"Dale asked as he shook Ed's hand.

"We had a little car fortuity in conclusion dark,"Ed replied.

Grace snorted as she finished hugging Tristram."Little car accident he says."

Ed pulled Tristram to him in a tight hug. When he pulled back he looked at her in vexation as she'd trembled a little in his arms. She just smiled and moved over to take Dales arm."There's more to this narrative ?"she asked him to deflect his attention.

Rolling his eyes, Ed described the events of the Nox before as Dale and Tristan looked back in shock. Grace finished the story, giving her English from the time Ed was taken away in the ambulance when the constabulary and firetrucks arrived and moved them all farther away from the burning truck. The driver of the semi was the lonesome fatality in the accident.

"It was a damn good thing the motortruck's heater was broken !"Dale said when the fib was finished.

"That's what I said !"free grace agreed.

"Well, more than the heater's busted now. I'll be taking the bus for a little while."Ed shrugged.

"No Edward, succeeding week we're going shopping for a new truck !"Rachel said walking into the room with a tray of fancy snacks which she set down on the umber table.

Ed was trying to protest but his tongue got tangled as he got an eyeful of the tops of Rachel's exuberant breasts.

"It will be fun picking out the characteristic in the dealership with Ed,"Angie agreed as she too carried in a tray and leaned over to place the tray on the table.

Ed got a few audio of protest out but nothing coherent as his eyes took in Angie's soft expanse of rounded flesh.

Zoe entered next and Ed's mouth just hung open as he took in her gold case garb with the plunging neckline, the gold chains tangling between her breasts and her demure but deeply slaked smile. She set the tray she was carrying on the table and Ed's mouth snapped shut.

Dale started to laugh as he saw the young man completely outclassed in this battle.

The doorbell rang again and shortly the audio of kid's giggles filled the outer foyer as Stephanie's kids came running.

Ed's brass lit up as the four Kyd entered the room and he bent down to give each of them a hug. They asked him curiously about his cane so he gathered them close on the other side of the lounge and told them the tale of the mad Christmas Pirate who destroyed his motortruck in a perfervid plosion. The kid's heart were wide with excitement and they all wanted to see his stitches so he lifted his pant leg and they squealed in horror-struck excitement.

"ED !"Stephanie's voice rang out. His head popped up over the top of the couch.

"What are you doing ?"she asked, trying to hide out her grin.

Ed came around the couch using his cane and her grin fell away. She rushed over to him and touched his chest."WHAT HAPPENED ?"she squeaked.

Stephanie's kids all swarmed around her to fill her in on the apprehension Christmas Pirate who attacked Ed and grace of God and how Ed got them to guard with only a little wound to his leg though his motortruck was destroyed.

She looked at Ed and he nodded with a fake grim look on his face."It's true. My hand truck is no more."

Ed looked closer and his face lit up in a smile."Breakfast at Tiffany's !"

Stephanie was wearing dark satin baseball glove that went all the way up to her toned biceps. The mordant satin dress was a reproduction of the Givenchy garb that Audrey Hepburn wore in that famous movie. It was one of Shirley's favorite motion-picture show. He ignored the sadness that tugged at him when he thought of Grace's mom."You look amazing !"he purred and her cheek lit up with her own shy smile. He took in the glittering tiara she wore in her black hair and the outsized pearl necklace. It looked like she stepped from the picture screen. Her big disconsolate eyes were sparkling with joy at his acknowledgment of her dress and his appreciative looks.

Dale and Tristram came over to say hello and Ed looked up to see Carolyn take the air in with her Kyd. He walked over to come across them and they all looked at his cane. He knew these kids wouldn't appreciate an imaginative tarradiddle so he just gave them the facts.

"Hit a patch of ice driving menage last night and my motortruck slid off the road and got stuck in the blow. I carried free grace to safety but a hand truck pulling a tanker of gas also slid on the ice and crashed into my truck. Both hand truck blew up. I was hit in the leg by a opus of metal ripped from a building we were hiding behind.

"Did you get stitches ?"Gregory asked with an charge voice.

"Yup,"Ed replied.

"Can we see them ?"Amelia asked, equally worked up but maybe a piddling nervous.

Ed raised his supercilium at Carolyn who was grinning at her kid's enthusiasm. She nodded. Ed pulled up his pant leg and the two small fry squealed in horrify excitement. As Ed dropped his trouser leg the four other kids raced up and grabbed their friend's deal and they ran for the basement step. The game room had been set up for the kids to play before dinner. Isabelle followed them down.

He turned to Carolyn who looked breathtaking in a cryptical green garb that left her subdivision and her back exposed. She came forward to hug him and Ed touched the tattoo on her back, running his fingerbreadth over the promote cicatrix. Scars he now knew were euphony. She clung tighter to him as his fingers caressed her rear.

They parted and she looked up at him with such a look of love it took his breathing place away.

"I'll never be able to state how grateful I am that you found the music hidden in the tattoo. I presented my initial findings and I have two offers for publishing the completed workplace. Very generous fling ! We were going to be able to populate comfortably before. Now our futurity are set !"

"That's amazing ! I'm so glad for you !"Ed said and pulled her in for another hug. She held him pixilated as well.

"soul seems pretty well-chosen !"Stephanie grinned as she came to see her acquaintance.

Ed turned to explain and Carolyn put a finger over his mouth."I'm saving it for later,"she said and Ed nodded with a big grin. Stephanie pouted but Carolyn just gave her friend a hug.

They walked back into the family unit room to babble out with the others. Ed's leg was tired so he sat on the couch. Grace sat down following to him and held his hand.

"How's the leg ?"she asked.

"It's ok. I'm just giving it a sleep. I don't think I'll be doing any dancing tonight,"he sighed.

The doorbell rang again and Isabelle guided Mishka and ling inside. The dark smasher was wearing a royal blue ankle length dress with slits to allow her legs to establish as she walked. Ed noted she had very nice legs. Heather came in wearing a sinister knee length dress with gloomy lace at the shoulder joint and sleeves. The blue air matched Mishka's dress and she looked stunning in it !

Ed made to stand but Mishka held up a paw to stop him."Doctor's orders ! residual !"she said with a smiling and he gratefully slumped back. Grace got up to throw her a kiss and tight hug and Mishka blushed at Grace's ebullience.

"Thank you for taking such dependable care of Ed !"good will exclaimed.

"It was my pleasure !"Mishka replied.

"Hey ! Choo tryin'to steal my miss meng ?"broom said with an idiom Ed just could not discern. Mishka rolled her eyes with entertainment as Heather threw some crew foretoken at Grace who started acting like a gang goon back at her friend. This soon dissolved into laughter.

Zoe took this opportunity to sit next to Ed and snuggled in close.

"Hi."

"Hi yourself,"Ed replied. The heat from her soft body ignited… something in him."You look… delicious."

"Save your appetite for dinner,"she said but her eyes were saying something completely different.

He leaned in to spill quietly."I want to free that Chain from between your breasts… with my teeth."

She trembled with desire. Maybe it wasn't such a hurt thing to sit so confining to Ed before dinner. She went to stand up but his handwriting was in her hair and his sass were on hers and she was lost to his buss.

When Ed pulled back from her delicate lips he gasped softly. He blinked as he became aware of his environment again. He looked up and saw Grace and Mishka looking at him in surprise. Heather's manifestation was closer to awe. Conversation in the elbow room had come to a stoppage.

Angie and Rachel helped Zoe up from the couch and took her with them to the kitchen. She looked back at him as they left the way. Ed's facial expression went crimson and he didn't know where to look.

thanksgiving sat down beside him and took his hand."It's ok Ed."

He finally looked at her and she saw the mental confusion in his heart. He really looked lost. Her heart went out to him but she didn't know how to help him with this. Except to be there for him. She felt his grip tighten and he leaned on her a footling taking comfort from her.

Mishka was watching his reaction to his own deportment. She found it fascinating ! She glanced at Heather and saw she was still staring at Ed. Mishka moved closer and bumped her with her hip. heather started and blushed as she looked at her devotee. She took Mishka's arm and they walked over to the bar. She leaned in closer to utter quietly."Fuck ! That was really hot ! I've never seen Ed act so fast-growing !"

"I don't think Ed is used to it either."Mishka mused and Heather looked back and saw Ed trying to get his equipoise back.

The doorbell rang again and Ed looked up. There was only one More salient guest so he struggled to his metrical unit and state of grace let him go on his own. He met Isabelle at the threshold and indicated that he'd answer it.

When he opened the doorway he saw the back of a fur coat walking away from the door.

"Victoria ?"

The figure stopped then slowly turned. flighty hazelnut tree eyes looked back at him and he smiled.

"Come in please ! It's frigidness out there !"

Queen Victoria walked back and stepped into the warmness of the house while Ed closed the threshold. She noticed he was using a cane and her timid smile was replaced with a look of concern.

"What happened Edward ?"she asked, touching his arm.

Ed shrugged."Just a little stroke in my hand truck terminal Nox. I need to keep all my weight off my leg for a bit. Nothing major. Can I get your coat ?"

She nodded and undid the buttons slipping it from her shoulders. Ed hung it in the press by the threshold and turned to face her again. She was wearing a endearing black lace blouse with a gold underlay, a charcoal chick to mid-calf and red pumps. Very chichi and stylish.

As promised she hadn't gone to a salon to stimulate them airbrush away her rude beaut. She'd done her own make-up and kept it subtle… except for her bold red lip rouge but that was her stylemark so it was expected. Her hair still shone like Au but its fashion was more casual and loose.

Once he'd taken in her new looking at he gazed into her eyes and saw her desperate need for approval. Even he was able to recognize that look.

"You look so beautiful tonight, Victoria. Thank you for coming to the party !"he said and she bloomed. Her trust and aplomb returned, perhaps not as strong as it had once been but it was good to see her brittle fear burned away by her felicitous smile.

Angie arrived with Rachel and Zoe. Ed glanced nervously at Zoe as Rachel stepped forward.

"Queen Victoria ! Welcome ! This is Angie Spencer, our host for the company and Zoe Sandoval who owns the holding adjacent to yours. It's so rattling you were able to join us today ! Merry Christmastide !"

Rachel then surprised Queen Victoria by giving her a genuine hug, not the fake touchless greeting she'd received in the past tense. Angie did the Sami as did Zoe and by the end Ed could see Victoria was beginning to get a trivial overwhelmed with emotion. Her grin was in position but her eyes had become a niggling glassy.

"The others are in the fellowship elbow room and you can get a drink in there. We're just finishing up the dinner preparations."Angie said and the three headed back to the kitchen.

When they were alone Ed took Queen Victoria's men in his and she bit her trembling lip."We're huggers. It's real and honest. You're part of our roundabout of friends now, ok ? If you need aid you can call on any of us, at any time. You aren't alone."

It was too much for Victoria and she began to cry. Ed pulled her against his chest and she clung to him as she cried. He held her until the reverence and desperation were gone and she felt composed once more. She pulled back and took a tissue from her modest gold grasp purse. She dabbed at her heart and smiled shakily at Ed.

"Thank you so much Edward. I've never… had any real booster,"she said sadly.

"wellspring now you have many !"he grinned."come on, let's go run across the rest."

Taking his arm in hers Ed led her down the mansion house into the family way. He felt her traveling bag on his arm was a picayune tight as she was skittish.

He brought her to Grace first as she was cheeseparing to the threshold and his leg was beginning to ache.

gracility stood and met them as she saw the hint of pain in Ed's centre."Victoria ! It's lovely to see you again !"she said as she gently embraced the woman. Ed took that opportunity to sit.

"Sorry, my leg needs a rest."Ed explained as Victoria looked at him in worry pickings in the wince.

"Doctor's orders."Mishka said with a grin as she approached."Hello, I'm Mishka Shyamalan and this is Calluna vulgaris Jimmy Conors. I own the offset dwelling on the street and Heather is my fiancé."

"kudos !"capital of Seychelles said and stepped forward to give Mishka a hug. She wanted so often to be function of Ed's rope of friends. Mishka was a piddling surprised but embraced the cleaning woman in return key. Heather enthusiastically came forward for a hug of her own and Victoria's grinning was beaming as she stepped back. She loved this new story of intimacy. It warmed her to her toes.

As Mishka and heather mixture stepped back Carolyn and Stephanie approached.

"Is- is that a Givenchy ?"Queen Victoria asked in surprise as she took in Stephanie's clothes.

The charwoman smiled in return."I'm afraid it's only a poor copy but I love it just the same. I'm Stephanie. It's very nice to get together you Victoria !"They embraced and she stepped back to introduce her champion."This is Carolyn. We own the two domicile just north of Rachel's up the hill."

"Very nice to meet you ! Welcome to the family !"Carolyn smiled, reading Victoria's happiness to be included as she stepped in for her own hug.

Victoria was looking a niggling misty eyed again as Dale and Tristan approached.

"We're the only one in this ‘ family'who don't actually live in the neighborhood."Dale said with a grin."I'm Dale Grant and this is my lovely wife Tristan."

Victoria recognized Dale's name and it showed in her surprised tone. In the sociable roofy she'd… once been in, the subsidisation were well respected and target area of chance."My- husband spoke of you. He was highly jealous of your connective and influence."

Dale grimaced."You are highly fortunate to be rid of that wickedness man."

"Dale !"Tristan gasped in horror at his coarse words.

Victoria smiled and pulled Dale into a tight hug. He was smiling when she stepped back."Yes. Yes I am !"she said, her confidence getting yet another boost.

Tristan was still a niggling blockade but calmed when Victoria hugged her too.

"dinner party's served !"Angie called from the door and her node made their way down the hall to the dining room.

The longsighted table was beautifully set with tall slenderize candela in groups of three down its length. Platters of turkey, cranberry jelly and fresh cranberry sauce, Meleagris gallopavo stuffing, steaming roll of veg, and basketball hoop of tonic baked cookie filled the surface of the mesa. Twelve seat settings were arranged down the English of the tabular array, six on each side with a thirteenth at the top for Angie as the host. At the former end of the table was the kids board seating three per side.

When the fry came upstairs Stephanie made the initiation for Victoria who was delighted to see children at Christmastide.

Ed caught a sad manifestation flit across her face. He moved next to her and gently bumped her articulatio humeri with his. When she looked up at him he gave her a grinning."Family's Charles Frederick Worth fighting for,"he said and she nodded firmly. He saw the resolve in her eyes as she thought of her daughters.

They looked to find their places at the table and saw beautifully hired man written poster positioned before each place setting.

"This is exquisite calligraphy !"Victoria said admiring the script on the small-scale white carte. She was secretly thrilled to see she was sitting next to Ed.

Isabelle blushed."Thank you ! It's a hobby of mine."

"Are you an artist too ? Such graceful control over a pen usually means you're equally skilled at other artistic pursuits,"Victoria Falls continued.

"I dabble,"Isabelle admitted bashfully.

Angie snorted."splash around. She's a brilliant artist and I'm not saying that just because I'm her female parent !"

"Mom !"

Angie grinned at her daughter's embarrassed smile.

"Take your seats everyone !"

With Angie at the top she'd placed Rachel at her veracious manus and Zoe at her left wing. future to Rachel was Ed, then Victoria Falls, Dale, Tristan, and Isabelle who could keep her eye on the child. Sitting future to Zoe across from Ed was free grace then Stephanie, Carolyn, Mishka, and Heather.

Once everyone was seated Angie got everyone's attention."Before we begin I'd like everyone to join hands please."

Victoria felt a bang as she placed her left hand in Ed's large mitt and took Dale's hand in her right. She looked up at her horde with a grinning as did the others.

"First I want to give thanks you all for coming to celebrate Christmas with us. It means so very much to us that you joined us. Whether you celebrate the spiritual meaning of Christmastime or simply appreciate the custom of the day, the most important intent of the day is the gathering of friends and category to contribution the joy and make out this celebration is built upon. I can think of no finer friends to share this day with."

"Amen !"Dale said a slight gaudy than intended and chortle erupted around the table.

Angie released her friend's hands and everyone began filling their photographic plate. phonograph record and bowlful were passed back and forth. Dale did the award of opening two feeding bottle of vino and these were passed around as well.

Soon everyone was enjoying the wonderful food and drink and conversation was light and fun.

Victoria was enjoying the wine and her relief at being accepted was so fill out it made her almost giddy. She didn't need to pretend to be interested and friendly as it came naturally. Everyone was so echt and heart-to-heart ! For the first base time in long time she was able to relax with others. She struck up a fascinating conversation with Dale and his wife about their recent trip to Barbados, an island she'd always wanted to chitchat. Mishka and Scots heather joined in as they thought it might be a adorable office to go on their honeymoon. When Victoria heard that Edward and Rachel were there with the concession the estimation of traveling with the big man slipped into her mind and that phantasy distracted her for a bit.

Ed was trying to tell a antic and he was destroying it so badly that Stephanie couldn't closure giggling. On his third attempt Stephanie frantically waved at him to discontinue as she couldn't breathe. He finally gave up with a grin and pout. Carolyn was enjoying seeing Stephanie drop off it. Grace was watching Ed with a grin and Zoe's middle were twinkling with happiness.

afters was a selection of sticky toffee pudding patty, chocolate Eucalyptus amygdalina pie, ice emollient and a variety of habitation baked cookies.

Ed sampled everything but the peppermint gum pie as he wasn't keen on that flavor.

Too soon the meal was over and the nipper were tasked with taking all the lousy dishes to the kitchen before they were allowed to manoeuver downstairs to play. Angie and Isabelle moved the leftover nutrient into the fridge while everyone moved back to the kinfolk room to relax.

Ed found a comfortable spot on the sofa and eased himself down. His leg wasn't bothering him so much as he'd overeaten and was feeling a little sleepy from all the honest food for thought. Grace sat following to him and held his hand. capital of Seychelles walked in speaking with Dale and Tristan. Ed saw she was smiling and relaxed and he was glad that she was having a good time.

"Ed, can I fix you a scotch ? I brought a feeding bottle of the proficient stuff to share."Dale called out.

Ed grinned and nodded to the man and got a big smile in return.

Victoria looked around for Ed and spotted him sitting in the eye of a magnanimous comfortable couch. She'd had too very much wine with dinner and her head was spinning a little so she carefully made her way towards the couch. She looked to goodwill who saw how carefully she was moving and the youthful woman gave her a knowing smile.

"My good, I think I enjoyed myself a little too much at dinner. The wine was so in effect ! May I join you before I fall down ?"she said to the twosome on the sofa.

"Please do. I mean- please have a seat, not accrue down."Ed blurted.

Victoria turned to sit but spun a little too quickly as the room kept spinning and she began to fall back. Then she felt a hand on her ass and one was on her English guiding her down. She felt the military capability in his deal as he gently lowered her onto the frame beside him. When she was down he pulled his hand back but she leaned back and settled in under his arm. God his body felt good to lean against !

"So sorry. The elbow room is spinning a little,"she said as she blushed.

Dale carried over Ed's tumbler of scotch and saw Victoria's DoS."Did I give you too much wine ?"he asked gently.

capital of Seychelles smiled up at the gentleman."Maybe just a signature but it was such a wonderful dinner. I wouldn't change a thing."She was feeling a definite glow at the instant and was becoming very sleepy. The security measure of Ed's arm around her and the rut of his body against hers after the ordeal she'd been through was completely relaxing her. She finally felt safe, like her bother were over and she was rid. Her heart began to close.

Dale handed Ed the scotch and smiled at the cleaning woman who was obviously on her way to sleepy land. He raised a toast to the Loretta Young man and they clinked glasses. He watched Ed sip the scotch and take in its flavors. Then the swallow with eyes closed to finger its heat sliding down his throat. When Ed's optic reopened he smiled broadly.

"Oh that's good scotch ! Really well !"Ed gushed.

"I knew you'd appreciate it !"Dale grinned as he took a sip from his own glass.

"There you go, corrupting Ed with your pixilated severely hard drink again !"Tristan teased her hubby.

"Being introduced to the good things in life history isn't corruption it's enlightenment !"he teased back."That's how I felt when I met you !"

"Ooo ! You're a smooth talker Mr. !"Tristan said batting her eyelashes at Dale.

"All the better to drag in you off your feet my lovemaking !"he said pulling her into a hug and planting a osculation on her felicitous lips. They moved to take a butt on the love seat across from the couch.

Ed was grinning with joy and looked towards Grace. He saw she was watching him with love in her middle. He tried to angle towards her to buss her but he couldn't move. He looked to his leftfield and saw Victoria was asleep on his left arm. He looked back at Grace in surprise and her lips were on his. Her marvelous subdued lips. He could get lost in the seventh heaven of her osculation ! He put his tumbler between his human knee then reached up with his freed mitt to slide it into the hair on the spine of her head word so he could osculate her more deeply. She pushed back against his chest and pulled her lips from his causing him to moan a lilliputian. She lifted his arm over her and settled in under it.

His point was spinning from her kiss but he realized he no longer had a script to raise his scotch with."Uh goodwill, could you get my score now that you have my arm ?"

She chuckled and pulled it from between his knees and he was able to slacken. She lifted it to his back talk so he could take another sip.

Mishka and Heather were helping Isabelle, Stephanie, and Carolyn roll the three couches, the tete-a-tete and two redundant chair in a square around the vauntingly umber board. Angie, Rachel and Zoe carried in phonograph record of cookies and cupcakes, and a tea and coffee tree service. All of this went onto the coffee tabular array.

Soon everyone was relaxing and Rachel spotted Victoria Falls snoring gently against Ed's berm. She smiled and shook her drumhead. She understood how comforting it was to be in Ed's limb and couldn't begrudge the fair sex this elementary pleasure after what she'd been through. She caught Ed's eyes on hers and saw his admiration and love in them. She felt a pizzazz of joy shoot through her body from that.

Isabelle made herself busy as Santa's piddling help by bringing the tike upstairs. They immediately headed for the cookies and cupcakes. Isabelle got them distributed amongst the couches squeezed in with the adults then collected the present under the tree diagram for them. Each tiddler got one present tense to give and they tore into the wrappings with joy. They all discovered action figures from the latest motion-picture show vent so squeals were heard and each of the kid rushed to pass Angie a kiss then they raced downstairs to play with their new toys.

Victoria woke to the sounds of happy tike and she smiled thinking it was her girl. Then she recalled they were oversea and for a minute despair almost overwhelmed her. Edward's words came to her then. Family was worth fighting for and she would not give up ! She felt so lovesome and condom. Then she heard other vocalism. She cracked her heart open and saw she was on the couch nestled in under Edward's arm up against his body. She saw Dale and Tristan sitting on the love seat on the other side of the chocolate table. They were watching her Wake with gentle smiling on their faces.

That's when she noticed the drool.

She was mortified that she'd drooled on herself- on Edward Antony Richard Louis too !

"Oh my god ! Oh ! I'm so regretful !"she muttered in absolute embarrassment and tried to move away from him but his firm arm wrapped around her holding her in shoes. A gentle hand dabbed her mouth and chin with a tissue paper. She timidly looked up into favorable eyes smiling down at her.

"Do you mean you're the showtime to do that to me ?"he said simply as he dabbed his jumper dry.

She blushed again and he gave her another hug then released her so she could sit up.

She looked down at her work force."Thank you Edward VIII for being so overnice to me."

Ed looked at her in surprise."Why wouldn't I be nice to you ?"

Victoria shook her head and looked at the rest of the group."I really want to thank everyone for being so welcoming and wonderful. Everyone I knew before… before I killed my husband…"she shook her headland."They've abandoned me. I'm a mixer pariah. I don't want any of you to suffer that fate for my sake."

"Queen Victoria, anyone who would desert you in your time of abstruse desperation isn't worthy of your friendship. Ed brought us up to speed on your situation and on the measure you were forced to take to escape from your husband. I believe I can talk for all of us here that we don't give a skunk ass what anyone thinks of us and we'd be damned if we let anyone's ignorance keep us from being your friend. You are one of us now. You're stuck with us."Dale said with a stubborn look.

The eternal rest of the grouping nodded and smiled. Ed put his hand over hers and gave them a squeeze. capital of Seychelles's eyes were welling with binge. All she could manage was a squeaky ‘ thank you'as her pharynx closed up.

Isabelle returned from the basement."Is it time to handwriting out the gifts to the adults now ?"she said with a smile.

"What giving are those ? We didn't get gifts for each other."Angie asked.

Isabelle went to the tree and picked up a slew of modest boxful roughly wrapped. Names were handwriting written on them. She began to hand them out and Ed began to writhe when he saw it was the gifts he'd picked up.

"Ed, stop worrying."blessing said patting his leg which was bouncing nervously.

He pushed himself to his feet."I just want to excuse now before you open them. I had no meter to Christmas workshop this year so I picked up all my natural endowment at the airdrome in New House of York city on the way back from our sojourn. I thought these would be just a footling fun thing and I'd get you all something better but…"

Stephanie got hers open first and pulled out a metal locket the size of her palm with an etching of the Statue of Liberty on it. She smiled at Ed and pressed the clit on the face and the locket folded outdoors. There was a mirror on one side and a 2"x3"word-painting on the early. Stephanie looked at the characterization and froze. Her heart went blanket as she bit her lip and her aspect got all red as Ed watched her nervously. He was expecting her to laugh. He thought the endowment was funny remark. Why wasn't she laughing ?

Angie got a gold locket with a big red apple on the side of meat. She opened hers and gaped at the picture she found inside. She looked over at Rachel and Zoe who were tearing into their packages after seeing the expressions on their friend's faces.

Rachel began to chuckle as she saw hers and Ed felt a little salutary but even her chortle wasn't a laughter chuckle. He turned to Grace as she finally managed to get past the tape jail Ed had sealed her gift in. Wrapping nowadays was not his forte. Her locket was gold with a yellow cab in glittery stones. She popped it open and her eyes went wide when she saw the picture.

Ed leaned closer to whisper."Why isn't anyone laughing ? It's a gag gift ! I thought everyone would think they were really shady !"

"Oh Ed ! I love this !"Zoe purred as she devoured the picture show in hers with her eyes.

"Oh my god ! Are all the pictures dissimilar ? ! ?"Carolyn gasped as she caught sight of the picture in Stephanie's locket which wasn't the same as hers. Suddenly the ladies were on their feet comparing pictures.

Ed looked at Queen Victoria whose font was flushed. He thought he'd put a non-gag image in hers. He felt awed that he'd embarrassed her !

"I'm sorry they are dumb giving ! I'll take them back-"

"NO !"Victoria blurted loudly and the eternal sleep began to laugh. She looked around and saw they were laughing with her not at her so she gave them a shy smile and looked back at her locket with a grin.

"You can't have mine back either Ed !"Stephanie grinned wickedly. Soon all the fair sex were jumping on that bandwagon and turned back to comparing the pictures.

Angie turned to Ed with an incredulous reflexion."Wait a mo ! You took these pictures in a photo booth at the airport ? ! ? Ed, you're… naked in these pic ! You were naked in a photograph booth in one of the busy airdrome in the US ? How on Earth did you handle not to get caught ?

"When I was in the airdrome natural endowment shop I saw so many gag giving with dead reckoning of disinvest male role model posing in these… positions. I thought it would be odd if I used pictures of myself in those same poses ! And I'm not naked ! I covered my important parts… mostly. I thought you would regain them risible !"he said with a pout."And the police Lady thought they were pretty fun. She kept watch when I told her what I wanted to do."

Grace started to laugh and hugged Ed who just looked at her in surprise.

Mishka saw a close up of Ed's friendly smile inside her locket. She turned it around to show the others."Mine seems domesticate enough."

Heather's had a standardised smiling typeface picture and she showed it as well.

"Ah Calluna vulgaris, I mixed yours and Victoria's up,"Ed said.

"I have to see it at least !"broom bounced up to her feet and walked over to Victoria's side.

capital of Seychelles popped the locket open and showed it to Heather whose jaw dropped.

"Aw man ! I want one of those too !"Heather moaned.

Isabelle was standing following to Heather with wide eyes. She looked at Ed and licked her brim nervously."You know, if we mounted these images all English by English and scanned them we could get a really awesome collage."

"YES !"Angie cheered."That's my daughter's artistic genius at work ! How prominent would the last bit be ?"

"well, each is 2"x3"and there are how many images ? nine ?"Isabelle said as she counted the lockets.

"Ten,"Tristan said turning the locket she had which contained one of the beefcake motion picture as well.

Ed hung his head then looked up at Tristan and Dale."I'm so sorry ! I thought I used one of the happy face images in yours. I must have gotten it mixed up with the outtakes."

The women went smooth and looked his way."You have more of these ?"Rachel asked with a happy grin.

"Just the bad ones."

"How many,"Rachel pushed.

"About 20. I spent a lot of money on that poor fish booth as it kept taking pictures too quickly, catching me between airs. The police noblewoman said she had to sequester some as they were too risqué."Rachel exchanged excited looks with her friend and they all looked to Grace.

"We'll hire a look at the pictures when we get home."good will said as she gave them an diverted grin.

"So… they aren't bad presents ?"Ed asked Grace.

"No Ed, they're a big hit !"Grace said with a gentle grinning which he returned.

"I like my gift very much too Ed, thank you !"Dale said holding up the package of whisky stones.

Ed saw them in the gizmo shop in the airdrome and the salesman explained they were stones you froze and put in your scotch to chill it without watering down your drink. He thought they were perfect for Dale. He gave the man a happy nod.

Angie came over to kneel down before Ed and took his mitt."It was really sweet of you to get us all present but you really didn't need to do that."

"You have all been so amazing to me and goodwill this year I wanted to do something to show up my appreciation."He caught the center of each of the fair sex in his life now."You've been so generous to me and I've done nix in coming back,"Ed said sadly.

"OH MY GOD ED ! How could you think that ?"Angie gasped in shock."You came with me to New York to that accolade show ! You protected me from Greg !"

Stephanie was side by side to chime in."You showed up at our sign of the zodiac dressed as Father Christmas. You absolutely made Christmastime for my Kyd that night ! Then after a long day of oeuvre you came over to my place to assemble my new bedroom furniture."She bit her lip and looked at Ed with a sly grin as she remembered what else they'd done. Ed blushed as he remembered too.

"Ed discovered the secret to unlocking the language of my lost tribe !"Carolyn said and shocked faces swung in her direction."I've been capable to transform the tattoo based on the songs I recorded from them and the scarring in my tattoo. Ed discovered the practice in the promote surfaces was euphony. He unlocked the tattoo and now I have two John Roy Major publishing sign bidding on the right field to bring out the new words with a world tour museum circuit, conferences, and interviews ! There is significant money on the mesa and finally some identification for the federation of tribes !"

Carolyn received clinch from some of the lady and felicitation from the others.

Rachel returned to her seat and looked over at Ed."Edward, don't forget that you took me to the gala dinner with Dale and Tristan and you used a week of your vacation time to go to Barbados with me ! That's a hebdomad I'll never forget ! Even if you can't remember parts of it !"Rachel grinned.

"Some memories surfaced."Ed grinned back at Rachel and turned his gaze to Tristan who froze like a deer in the headlights.

"I won that drinking competition on the party gravy holder !"he cheered and Tristram burst into skittish giggles. She calmed when Dale took her mitt in his. Grace wondered at her odd reaction.

On her way back to her seat from hugging Carolyn Zoe stopped in front of Ed."You brought my daughter back to me. We have a long way to go but when she broke down in the prison house I reached her. For the first metre in years we connected. I'll be forever grateful for that. On that very Same dark you saved my sprightliness. Luis Ramos was going to dishonour and kill me. Make no mistake that was his spirit the moment he saw me. He'd raped me twice in the past and I barely managed to survive the beatings he gave me afterwards. If you had not done what you did that dark, I would be all in today. The fact that you punished him so severely for his malevolent brings my person a level of serenity I never thought I would have. Again, I can not give thanks you enough."

Ed was blushing and squirming but saving grace had a appreciation on his arm.

"What… what did Edward do ?"Queen Victoria gasped breathlessly.

With a coup d'oeil at Ed to invite permission she faced Victoria when he nodded slightly.

"Ed pulled his arms off."

seemliness rubbed his back as he shuddered hearing the word of honor again.

The way went soundless as everyone absorbed that fact. It was the first off clip many had heard the story.

Dale watched Ed's reaction to the parole and his eyes widened. It wasn't an hyperbole ? He'd have to ask Zoe for inside information when Ed wasn't around.

Mishka also wanted point because questions were filling her thinker. Mostly revolving around the exact nature of the trauma and how it was treated.

Heather's, Victoria's, Stephanie's and Carolyn's reaction were far more natural. They wanted to get penny-pinching to Ed. Only Victoria could as she was sitting adjacent to him. She subconsciously leaned in against his side of meat. Ed smiled at her thinking she was just lending him her support.

"I have another reason to thank Ed and this time it is far less unforgiving. The seasoning he provided for the steaks we serve in my restaurant has helped to further our gross thirty percent. It would have been high but we don't have the space for More customer at our location. We're booked solid for month in procession now ! We've been getting rave revues by all the intellectual nourishment critics and everyone at the restaurant got a lovely bonus this Yule because of Ed. You are a submarine to the entire staff ! My controller worked out your portion for this quarter, based on Rachel's brutal negotiations."She smiled back at the red nous and handed Ed an envelope before sitting back down next to Rachel who gave her a hug.

Ed's centre bugged out when he saw the quantity on the cheque. This would go quite a ways towards finishing Grace's schooling !

"That's just for this fourth Ed. I'm also in negotiation with a major food distributor to bottle your steak flavouring and french fry seasoning for retail gross revenue. That would imply quite a bit more money for you !"Zoe smiled and grace of God gave Ed a big hug.

Rachel leaned forward to catch Ed's eye."Edward VII, you give us the most worthful gift of all, your time. Without complaint or question, you are always there for us. Always ready to contribute a hand or footprint in to make thing right. I know we can be pretty demanding but you're always so patient and giving. Please don't think we haven't noticed ! We love you !"

Ed was blushing but he held Rachel's oculus with his so she could see his love for her.

"On the subject matter of dearest I have one to a greater extent gift to devote Ed."goodwill said with a nervous smile.

Grace pulled an envelope out of her bag and unfolded it. She handed it to Ed biting her grim lip.

Ed grinned at Grace and opened the envelope. There was a folded patch of paper inside which he took out and unfolded. Grace's name was at the top of the paper and there was a opprobrious and Edward White image printed on the page. He looked at the image and it didn't register. He just couldn't secernate what he was looking at. His mind kept trying to see patterns in it but he couldn't. He looked blankly at Grace.

Victoria saw the ikon and made a screech noise before she slapped her hands over her sassing. Ed glanced at her in confusion then looked back to Grace.

"What is it ?"

"It's an sonography of our babies."

"You're having a child ? My infant ?"Ed said quietly as his ears filled with a rushing noise.

"infant, Ed. Twins !"She was waiting for Ed's reaction and bed she'd have to give him a moment.

Squealing erupted from their audience and Rachel rushed over to hug saving grace. She was followed closely by the others as everyone wanted to preen her and give her hugs.

Ed looked at the picture and tried to see the babies. The holler was very loud in his headspring now and distracting but he did his honest to discount it. Now that he knew what to look for the picture snapped into sharp centering."time lag ! Did you say twins ?"Ed blinked.

gracility had tears of happiness from the buss and hugs from everyone. Everyone but Ed. Still she waited. Angie began to get frustrated with Ed's behavior but state of grace just held up her hired hand to let her get it on they had to be patient. She nodded to Ed.

"I- I see- I see the… babies."He turned his forefront to Grace and tears of joy were running down his buttock."You're having my babies ?"

grace of God smiled and nodded. Ed took her in his weapon system and cried. He was thrilled ! He was terrified ! He didn't know how to react. He just held her and rocked back and forth.

Finally Grace pushed him back so she could reckon him in the eye. She lifted his chin and she saw fearfulness there but he had a punishing time looking her in the eye.

"Ed, talk to me. What's wrong ? Aren't you felicitous ?"Grace asked gently.

"Oh Grace, I'm so happy I don't know what to do with myself !"he replied quietly.

"But…"

Ed's chest was slopped but he couldn't deny her."I pray the deuce-ace will have your smarting and not be simple headed like me !"

"The twins will be beautiful and a consummate mix of both of us,"seemliness said happily.

Ed held up the photographic print."I've never read one of these before but I see three babies."

"time lag, didn't you say you were on the oral contraceptive pill ?"Rachel blurted.

Grace bit her lip and gave Rachel a guilty smile as she took the print from Ed's handwriting to show him the Twins. Rachel grinned and shook her finger's breadth at Grace.

"Here's the head of the initiatory baby and here's the head of the second,"Grace pointed out to Ed.

"And I think these could be the feet of a third baby,"Ed said pointing to a dim persona of the image.

free grace looked closer and the Supreme Headquarters Allied Powers Europe did seem like invertebrate foot. Feet that couldn't belong to the other two. Why hadn't she seen this before ?"We'll have to ask the Doctor to do another echography. He was sure enough it was twins !"

"Do multiple births run in your family ?"Stephanie asked.

"Yes, Shirley's mom was a twin."grace of God said distractedly as she turned her eye back to the picture.

"When are you due ?"Angie asked.

"Sometime in June."free grace mumbled unable to look away from the potential niggling feet. She shook her head and tried to put the melodic theme of triplets out of her head until they knew for sure. She'd barely prepared herself for similitude. Her self-confidence broke."How am I going to negociate triplets and a career ?"good will blurted."I don't know how to be a female parent ? face at my own good example !"

Rachel knelt by her infantry and took seemliness's men in hers."You are not alone in this ! We will be there for you and Ed and the kid !"She reached over and pulled Ed's hand on top of goodwill's and wrapped them both in hers."These children will be loved like no others. You have all of us for support."

Grace reached out and pluck Rachel into a hug and Ed hugged them both. When they pulled back eyes were dabbed to dry the happy tears.

Rachel was so excited ! Having infant in her home was a aspiration come dead on target ! She knew she could rely on Angie and Zoe to facilitate guide her in taking care of them. She was already envisioning the three of them going for walks with three go-cart. She couldn't check grinning and good will looked so happy and relieved.

"I'm going to be a Dad !"Ed mumbled as the concept slowly seeped into his brain. He pulled goodwill's hand to his lips and kissed her palm tenderly as he looked into her eyes."I don't have an example of how to be one but I'll try to be the best Dad I can be."Grace pulled his manus to her tum and his eyes followed.

"Just be who you are Ed. That's the best person a Dad could be."Grace smiled with tears in her eyes.

"Well this has officially become the best Christmastide company I've ever been to !"Dale said with a wide smiling and laughter broke out. He hugged his wife who was sharing a special smiling with him as she held his hand over her own tummy.

The party went on for quite some time as conversation centered on parenting and childhood experiences. The cooky and cupcakes slowly disappeared as the tea and coffee was sipped.

Soon everyone was yawning but reluctant to leave. The desire to stay in the consolation of being with safe friends was almost overpowering. They finally promised to get together for another political party to celebrate New Years and the company began to demote up. Isabelle went to gather up Stephanie's kids as Stephanie hugged goodwill and Ed walked her to the front door.

She looked up and saw somebody had hung a garland of mistletoe on the hall light. Ed spotted it too and pulled Stephanie against his dead body with a grin. Her centre widened and she giggled nervously. He took a kiss slowly and sensually from her mouth and she moaned gently as his rim caressed hers.

"Merry Christmas Day Stephanie,"he said when he pulled back.

"Merry Christmas…Ed,"she breathed as her unhurt dead body tingled.

He got her coat from the cupboard and helped her put it on as four sleepy kids trudged up the steps with Isabelle. Ed gave them hugs before they followed their mom outside to push home.

Arms wrapped around Ed from tooshie. He looked over his shoulder and saw it was Carolyn pressed up against his back. He turned and she looked up at him with a smiling. He gave her a ship's boat osculation and she melted in his coat of arms. Afterwards she rested her cheek against his chest until her kids pulled her away from him when Isabelle brought them upstairs.

"We're tired and we want to go home Mom,"Gregory said.

Ed just smiled at Carolyn's pout as he helped her on with her coat. He kissed her on the nose as he buttoned up her top button and that got her to smile. Ed hugged her tiddler with an substitution of Merry Christmastide and off they went.

His leg was tired so he made his way back to the family room and met Dale and Tristan on their way out. Dale reached out to shake his hand.

"Merry Christmas Ed and congratulations on your family to be !"Dale beamed as he shook Ed's hand firmly.

"Merry Christmas to you both,"Ed said with a big smile.

Tristan pulled Ed into a tight hug. Ed looked at Dale in surprise as he hugged her. Dale just smiled fondly at his wife.

She pulled back and Ed saw she was blushing and had bust in her eyes."Are you ok ?"he asked her in concern but she just nodded and kissed his boldness.

Dale gathered his wife up under his arm and led her to the strawman door where Isabelle was waiting with their coats. Ed made it to the fellowship room where Mishka took one look at him and directed him to a couch. He sank down into the shock absorber with a sigh and she sat down on the sharpness of the couch facing him.

"You need to stay off your feet for a day or so. That will generate your leg fourth dimension to get its healing underway. Then you can walk a petty more."Mishka said.

"I go back to work on Tuesday."

Mishka smiled."That should be OK but consume it dull and rest when you need to."

Heather came up to stand before them. She looked at Mishka."He hurt his calf, right ?"

When Mishka nodded Heather quickly slid her ass onto Ed's lap as she beamed down at him. Mishka squeaked in protest.

"Relax ! I just have a party favour to ask Ed… for us."broom smiled at her fan. She turned her typeface to Ed who was looking up at her in surprise.

"We will likely require to have a folk of our own one day. I'd like you to be the donor."Heather smiled.

Mishka was about to dissent once more but the image of having a family with Heather suddenly filled her head and she realized she did want that. Very much ! She reached out to take her fiancé's hand gently and pulled it to her brim.

Heather smiled tenderly at Mishka then her eye's widened as she felt something large pressing and moving against her ass."Ooo ! I think Ed likes that estimate too."She rubbed her ass against him, feeling his pecker growing and throbbing and her typeface became a fiddling flushed.

"Babe, can you necessitate me home now ?"Heather said with a quiet voice.

Mishka grinned at broom and nodded. She leaned forward and kissed Ed's cheek and Heather moaned as Ed throbbed under her.

"Mishka, please !"Calluna vulgaris's voice sounded a little desperate.

"Merry Christmas Ed and thank you,"Mishka said as she stood and pulled Heather to her feet. Heather clung to her side but looked down at the bulge in Ed's gasp leg. She pressed herself against Mishka and trembled.

Mishka finally managed to get them moving to the look door and Ed watched them go.

Victoria sat down gently next to Ed and smiled timidly at him. Then her oculus caught the shape of Ed's shaft against the tight framework of his gasp. Her boldness froze as she realized his size. God, she wanted to see it, to extend to it skin to skin… to savor it ! She felt so disgustful and… awake for the inaugural time since Ed visited her house.

"You- you never finished your firm telephone call that day,"she said quietly.

Ed looked at her and saw she was looking at his lap. She wasn't disgusted or dread so he relaxed a picayune."You're right. I should finish that this week,"he replied.

"I'd like that."Her eyes came up to come across his.

Ed really did think she was so much prettier now that her make-up didn't make her look like a doll. Her hair shone in the light and his finger were gently pushing it back from her forehead so he could see her face.

Victoria's middle closed as she felt his hand touching her tomentum. She smiled at his mildness and squeaked when his backtalk touched hers. He began to pull back but she pushed forward to seize his lips with hers. She took his look between her custody and kissed him deeply, her glossa slipped into his mouth and it was Ed's turning to squeak.

Her desperate motive for him drove her on and her love was everything.

Ed took a grip on her shoulders and pushed her back, stopping the kiss abruptly.

capital of Seychelles's eyes snapped open and she saw Ed's surprised expression. She felt something break inside. She looked around the room and saw shocked expressions on a number of faces. Her superfluity was perfect. She'd made a mark of herself.

She leapt to her feet and ran from the room ignoring Ed's shout for her to stop. She made it to the front door and tried not to calculate at Isabelle's refer saying as she was handed her coat. She quickly pulled it on and grabbed the threshold handle.

An arm went over her articulatio humeri and a large paw pushed the door closed. She felt her organic structure being spun around and pushed back against the door.

Ed took her chin in his paw and gently lifted her face until he could see her centre. She finally looked at him and she gasped.

Victoria was expecting to see cult or disgust but Ed was looking at her with compassionateness and more than a little lust. There was something… primal in his eyes.

"That was a very sound kiss. You just surprised me,"Ed said quietly, his voice deep with his need.

She trembled in his grip. He was so secure and she needed him so badly.

Ed could see the desperation in her optic. He wasn't certainly why she felt that way but it triggered something in him. He leaned in and kissed her strong, his natural language stroking hers, his trunk pressing her against the door. She was so sonant and willing, she was his to get hold of and his lustfulness surged.

Victoria Falls wanted to rip off her heavyset coat and her apparel underneath so she could feel Ed's body but he had her pinned against the doorway. He was being so rough ! He wanted her so badly ! She was so wet and she was tingling like mad between her legs !

Ed felt a sharp pain in the ass in his calfskin and it broke the spell. His mind began to total back to him. Before it did completely he slid his hand inside her coating and ran his fingers over her cloth covered pussy.

Victoria gasped and clung to him as he took her body and mind completely over the top. An acute burst of pleasure rocked through her and she whimpered against his shoulder joint as she shook through her release.

Ed pulled his mitt away and took her nerve between them again. He tenderly kissed her lips as she slowly came back to Earth.

"I'll see you this week. Be salutary until then,"he rumbled quietly. She bit her lip and nodded to him.

He pulled back and Victoria Falls pulled her coat closed and smiled up at him. She could see he still wanted her and that filled her being with fondness that would stay put with her until they could be together again. With another glad grin she slipped out the forepart door and was gone.

Ed leaned back against the room access and winced. His calf was throbbing painfully. When he opened his eyes he saw Isabelle standing in the lobby, her brass flushed. She was breathing hard, looking back at him with encompassing eyes.

"I need my cane,"Ed said. In his precipitation to catch capital of Seychelles at the doorway he'd left it behind.

"gracility ! ED indigence HIS CANE !"Isabelle called out, ineffective to move.

Moments later Grace rushed into the foyer with the cane. She was followed by the others. Everyone took in Ed slumping back against the threshold, the botheration in his optic, his obvious forcible excitement and Isabelle's land. saving grace moved to his side.

"What happened ? Is Queen Victoria ok ?"she asked with concern.

"He took her ! Against the door !"Isabelle blurted.

Ed blushed and nodded."She was ok when she left but… we need to talk,"he said quietly."I need to sit down."

Grace handed him his cane and helped him back to the family unit way. Angie grilled Isabelle for her eye witness bill and the young char squirmed as she recounted it to her mother.

Ed sank back against the shock and Rachel gently rested his left wing leg up on an ottoman. He smiled gratefully at her then his middle were trapped by her cleavage as she was leaning forward over his leg. He felt himself throb in his pants. She smiled up at him.

Zoe sat opposite him on the loveseat and Angie returned to the menage elbow room to sit future to Zoe. Isabelle had gone upstairs to her room to… be alone with her thoughts.

Ed's brows drew together as he struggled to put his words together. He looked Grace in the eye."You know I'm not very good at reading people so I may be way off foundation. I need you or Rachel to speak with capital of Seychelles to notice out if I'm right."Rachel nodded to him and he sighed with relief."When I spoke with her that time I serviced her planetary house she wanted me to osculate her. When I refused she got kind of desperate. I guess that was because of her husband's abuse. I don't know what damage he'd done to her. When I spoke with her at the prison she was so lost. I think she's a very lone individual. She told me tonight this was the number 1 metre she's had existent admirer. I'm worried about her. I think she really needs us."He looked at the others and saw them smiling back at him and nodding.

"Ed, you have such a good centre ! You're going to be the near dad !"Grace said and hugged him.

He wrapped his weaponry around her and held her tight against his trunk, burying his face in her soft, dulcet smelling hair.

"I hope I'll be a undecomposed dad ! I have no example to follow."Ed said quietly.

saving grace pulled back and took his human face in her handwriting."You just deliver to be yourself Ed. You know right from legal injury and you know the strength of compassion. You're an splendid listener. When you don't know something you aren't afraid to ask. That's a capital caput starting time !"

Ed looked at seemliness with love in his centre and he lifted her script to osculate them.

"We should get you family,"she said.

Rachel nodded and with Grace's supporter they pulled Ed to his animal foot. When he got there he discovered he couldn't put any weight on his leg without a lot of annoyance. They eased him back down onto the couch.

"I guess I must have strained it when I ran after Victoria."Ed said with a wince.

"Ed can delay in the Edgar Albert Guest room tonight and you can piece him up in the break of day,"Angie said.

"I thought Zoe was staying in the node room."Rachel said.

"She can ride out with me in my elbow room tonight."Angie clarified and Rachel nodded. Zoe opened her mouth to dissent but the early two pinned her with their eyes and she wisely remained silent.

Grace watched the telephone exchange with a knowing grinning."Let's get him to the guest room."

Once more she and Rachel got him to his feet but he had to be given on Grace to need the weightiness off his left leg. They made their way down the hall, moving slowly.

"Geez Ed, you need to go on a diet !"she groaned under his weight.

"I'm dingy Grace, I can put more free weight on my leg,"he said contritely.

"No, sorry I was just teasing. We're almost there,"good will apologized.

Zoe went in the room first and turned down the rag. She gathered a few items as saving grace and Rachel got Ed to the edge of the bed. Grace pulled his jumper up and over his school principal and Rachel removed his tie and began unbuttoning his shirt.

Ed gently took Rachel's work force in his and looked at her with a crook smile."You know, I know how to discase myself for bed."

Rachel leaned down and kissed Ed sweetly. She felt him straining to keep her mouth against his as she pulled back and that sent a thrill through her body."I love you Ed. You sleep well and we'll pick you up in the morning."She stepped back and good will came forward.

She took his look in her workforce and kissed him. When his hands touched her body she pushed back as he was just too tempting. She could easily see herself climbing onto his organic structure to… no, better go along those thoughts away.

Angie leaned his cane against the end tabular array in eccentric he needed it and gave him a kiss good night. Ed got an eyeful of her cleavage and he tried to expect elsewhere but Zoe was there looking so…

Zoe kissed him quickly and followed Angie from the room with her items in her hands.

Ed undid his pants and slid them off. He tugged his socks off and winced as his injured calf gave him another spike of bother. He pulled himself under the covers and tried to get some rest.

-=-

Angie and Zoe helped Rachel and Grace with their coat and gave them hugs.

"come for breakfast tomorrow !"Angie said with a big smile.

"Sounds lovely !"Rachel said and they stepped outside into the snow.

Angie locked up and turned to guide upstairs. She looked back and saw Zoe looking down the hall towards the Edgar Guest room."Zoe."

The womanhood jumped and turned to survey. They went to the schoolmaster and took turn of events getting ready for bed. Zoe slipped under the sheet and Angie turned off the lights.

"Good Nox Angie. It was a endearing company !"Zoe said quietly.

"Thanks ! good night Zoe."

They were both quiet for a piece though neither seemed to be falling asleep.

"Do- do you remember Ed is alright down there ?"Zoe asked.

Angie had been thinking the same thing but she knew what would happen if Zoe went to go over. Ed needed to rest. They'd just ingest to be strong."Ed is delicately. Go to sleep."

Zoe pouted and flipped onto her side facing away from Angie. She'd wait until Angie was deceased then she'd check on Ed just to make sure.

Angie turned onto her position away from Zoe and listened for her Quaker to decrease asleep so she could slip downstairs to mark on him herself.

-=-

Isabelle made her way to the kitchen to get a chilled bottle of water. Her ‘ alone time'had been lovely but she needed a drinking before she went to bed and liked to accept a nursing bottle of water on her night table. She heard a disturbance down the anteroom and stopped. It didn't strait like Zoe. She walked to the invitee way threshold and listened. She heard a painful hiss and opened the doorway stepping inside.

"ED ?"she squeaked.

He was standing in the middle of the flooring wobbling a fiddling with a death grip on his cane. He looked at her a little desperately.

"I need to use the washroom but it hurts too much to take the air. Now I'm stuck."Ed gritted out between his tooth.

"Where's Zoe ?"Isabelle asked as she put her shoulder under Ed's left arm and took his weight unit off his leg. She heard him sigh with relief.

"She's upstairs with Angie."Ed said as Isabelle slowly helped him over to the bathroom.

She got him positioned in front of the toilet and lifted the lid and keister for him. He still had his arm around her so she couldn't move away.

"Uh, could you… maybe just brook there while I do this so I don't come down ?"Ed asked, embarrassed."You can close your eyes."

Not trusting her vocalism she nodded and closed her eyes. She felt him struggling to fight his boxers down so she pulled the elastic down on her side. Her oculus opened automatically and she saw his intemperate shaft swing detached. She froze as she watched Ed take his thick member in his manus and dot it at the sports stadium. A stream of piss was soon rushing into the bowl and Isabelle watched in enthrallment. She'd never seen a man pee before. She grabbed a wad of lavatory paper in preparation as the roll was on her side.

When Ed was finished squeezing out the final stage pearl she handed him the theme and watched him dry himself off. She flushed and they moved to the sink to wash their hand. She helped him back to the bed and tried to ease him down on it but his leg gave and they both fell back onto the mattress. She banged her head on Ed's chin clocking him good.

They lay there for a bit just moaning.

"Ow."Ed said as he gingerly touched his chin.

"Geez ! Are you made of stone ?"Isabelle winced as she touched the sore office on her head.

"Not entirely,"he managed to say and she snorted in amusement.

She slid off the bed onto her animal foot and helped hook his branch under the covers. That placed her typeface right above his groin and she looked down at the excrescence in his boxers. She froze. It was right there.

"Ed ? I need to see it."

"What ?"he asked nervously as he watched her leaning over his body.

"Your cock. I need to see it. Up close."

"Uh, I don't think that's a expert ideaAHHHH !"he yelped as her hands were suddenly sliding over his boxers.

She tugged them down just enough to give up the brute. Her eyes widened as she admired his thickening length. Her judgment went back to the day she'd tried to take him inside her. That memory was stuck in her judgment. The vivid fullness, the paralysis of her fear, the pleasance and pain mixture and confusing her nous. She'd only managed to get just the tip of his shaft inside her and all she could echo was the intensity. She had to try again !

She leaned over to give the night tabular array drawer and pulled out the lubricating substance she'd leftfield there when she was dating her stopping point boyfriend Jeffery.

"Isabelle, what are you doing ?"Ed said trying to reach down to displume up his drawers.

She pushed him back down and squirted the lubricator onto his cock.

"AAAHHH ! THAT'S common cold !"he yelled.

Isabelle dropped the subway on the bed and grabbed his cock in both hands, lifting it upright and rubbing the lubricator over his skin.

Ed pushed his school principal back into the pillows as Isabelle's stroking felt very good.

She saw he was getting really hard so she stood up on the mattress, pulled off her panties, and pulled her nightie up and over her head. She stood over Ed defenseless and rubbed her lubricator covered hand over her wet kitty-cat. Fuck that felt good ! She sank down to her human knee straddling his dead body and rubbed her pussy up and down his length. Geezus ! She was so fucking wet ! She wanted Ed so much but she was also terrified of what she was about to seek to do. She savagely pushed that fear aside and lifted Ed's prick up to satisfy her pussy.

"Isabelle, would you just wait-"

NO ! She pushed back hard and Ed's well lubed hammer forced its way inside her pussy four inch before she locked up once more. The intensity she'd experienced before paled to the mavin ripping through her mind this clock time. FUCK ! She felt so incredibly full ! FUCK ! His hot shaft felt like it was on fire ! nooky ! Little barbs of pain from being stretched so wide blended with a delicious tingle ! FUCK ! The hollering in her ears was back and it was sweeping her mind away. It was too much !

She screamed.

-=-

Angie was getting frustrated as she waited for the strait of Zoe sleeping.

Zoe was feeling the same frustration as she waited for Angie to settle asleep.

When they heard the riot they were both on their feet running for the doorway before they realized why.

"Was that Isabelle ?"Zoe asked as they rushed down the stairs.

"I think so !"Angie replied.

They pushed open the door to the Guest way and stopped just inside.

Isabelle was straddling Ed's body but was slumped forward over him, unconscious. Ed was struggling under her to repeal her up and off of his hammer but her promontory was already touching the headboard. His leg prevented him from moving them down the mattress.

"aid me !"Ed called out.

This broke their paralysis. Angie and Zoe moved forward and lifted Isabelle's limp body from Ed's. When they pulled her off of his cock Angie looked for signs of bleeding but there was no blood present tense on Ed's cock nor was any dripping from her girl. That was a proficient star sign.

"Let's put Isabelle to bed,"her mother said.

Angie and Zoe carried Isabelle upstairs and they placed the young woman on her bed. Angie pulled the flat solid up over her body and kissed her frontal bone. Looking down at the girlfriend she shook her head. She had to see by now Ed was too big for her. She turned to say as much to Zoe but saw she was alone. That SNEAK !

Zoe walked over to the incline of Ed's bed and looked at his glossy and throbbing cock. A tremor went through her body. She looked into Ed's eye and the hungriness in them sent a boot through her. He gestured for her to get onto the other English of the bed so she walked around the bottom.

Angie burst into the room, slightly out of breath from her run. She opened her lip to tell Zoe to get back upstairs so Ed could rest.

"Come here, please."

Angie found herself moving to the English of the bed. Ed's center were on hers and he gestured for her to impress finisher. She wanted to tell him to stay, to let himself mend but instead she leaned over him and his digit slid into her silky haircloth. She trembled then his lips were on hers and nothing else existed in the humans. His mouth was balmy but demanding and she whimpered with need as his tongue gently touched and caressed hers. She sucked on the tip of his natural language then gasped as his helping hand moved to cup and force her heavy tit, tugging gently on her unshakable nipple.

Zoe slipped off her pantie and added a little more lubricant to Ed's peter. She swung her leg over his body and rubbed the slick top dog against her pussy lips pushing it in a piffling deeper with each pass.

Ed moaned into Angie's mouth as he felt his dick sloping trough into Zoe's heat. He had to let Zoe set the pace as his leg was throbbing. He kissed Angie more aggressively and she moaned with desire. He pulled her brass back and looked into her eyes.

"Please let me use my lip on you,"he rasped.

Angie felt a zing go through her body when Ed begged to eat her pussy. That was so have intercourse hot !

She pulled her weaken step-in off and quickly climbed onto the bed to carefully straddle his psyche. She lowered her pussy towards his mouth and his tongue found its sign. Angie threw back her head and cried out as she grabbed the headboard. shtup, he was good at this !

"Ooo, Ed ! That's so good !"she moaned.

Ed's bridge player found their way to Zoe's big bosom and he gave them a squeezing. His ovolo found her unbendable teat and nipple annulus and added more delight to her as she drove his cock mysterious inside her body. She was making trivial miaow of pleasure but these turned to gasp and cries as one of his custody landed on her clit. She began to drive herself severely on his cock as her culmination raced up on her. With Ed's thick, hot rooster stretching her afford, his fingers squeezing and tugging a nipple and his other finger's breadth meddlesome strumming her clit she was quickly losing control. She struggled to set a unbendable pace of bouncing on his stopcock but her dead body was beginning to demand more, faster, and harder. She gave it what it wanted.

Angie was sailing through one beautiful, pacify orgasm after another. Her mind was floating slightly above her body and she felt so desired, beautiful and sexy. She trembled and shook holding tight to the headboard as Ed's tongue and back talk brought her to the top of another release.

Ed's script moved faster against Zoe's clit and that was the final straw.

"YES ! ED ! OH FUCK ! CUMMMMMMINNNGGG ! FUCK !"

She wailed and ground down against him, feeling his hard cock buried deep inside her. She leaned forward against his hand squeezing her tit and rocked through her departure. When she began to get too tender she pulled herself free and rolled onto her back side by side to Ed. She lay there gasping while she watched him.

Though the intermittent nuisance he was getting from his leg was holding him back, his cock was still aching for his own firing so he lifted Angie's ass and moved her down his body. She squealed when she went airborne and squealed again when he set her down on his pecker.

"Geezus Ed ! You're still so hard !"she gasped.

He pulled her pussy back and Forth River against him and she moaned. She reached down and lifted his cock, guiding it to her twat.

Ed grabbed her pelvic girdle and get her down over his cock until their consistence slapped together. Angie cried out in walking on air from feeling his estrus reaching so mysterious inside her. He lifted and slammed her down on him to pump his cock in and out of her. Angie's eye squeezed closed as it was so much to a greater extent acute than the gentle pleasure he'd given her earlier. She was lost in the roughness of his Passion of Christ and all she could do was hang on for dear life.

He growled loudly as his long awaited coming finally began to crest. Angie's body reacted to his primeval roar by taking her through a hard and fasting release of her own.

"FUCK ! OH FUCK ! FUUUUUUUUCCCKK ! ! ! I'MMM CUMMMMING ! ! ! !"

Ed grabbed her big mammilla and squeezed them in his big hands and Angie shook harder. He lowered her against his chest of drawers and they relaxed that way, breathing hard.

Angie felt his softening peter slip from her pussy and sighed contentedly.

Finally she pushed herself up and off of him. Zoe moved in with a warm dampness facecloth and wiped Ed's face clean. Then she moved to wash his peter and balls but stopped when she felt new animation begin to twitch in his cock.

Ed gestured for Zoe to join him on the bed and pulled her against his body when she did. He kissed her tenderly and she smiled blissfully as she rested against his chest.

He turned and pulled Angie to him for a kiss as well. Her lips were so lenient. She snuggled in on his other slope and soon both women were snoring gently.

Ed was tired as well but his dust sentiment kept him arouse. It had been an consequential calendar week.

body of work was good, he loved his job, and it looked like he would get to do some more interesting job. He was also getting first-class pay.

With the extra income from Zoe's restaurant he was no longer worried about Grace's training investment trust !

His stupid Christmas gifts turned out to not be funny at all but were surprisingly well received just the Lapplander. Weird !

Victoria was back and theatrical role of their family.

But the most unbelievable newsworthiness was that he was going to be a Dad ! He was excited and worried at the Lapp time which was so disconcert ! He was so glad that gracility and Rachel would be there to help him.

He loved hanging out with Stephanie's kids and even Carolyn's though he had to retrieve heavy about what might interest them, their reactions were so different from his !

He really thought he'd neglected his friends considering all the wonderful affair they did for him and Grace. But they all disagreed. Each was grateful for how he shared his life with them. He found that odd because he was thankful for being allowed to share theirs. Rachel's words came back to him and he had to concord with her.

Time really was the most valuable natural endowment of all .
Sign-in {% trans 'to add this to Watch Later list' %}
{% trans 'Sign-in' %} to perform this action